Untitled

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 416

Ifthou art borrowed by a friend,

Right welcome shall he be


To read, to study, not to lend,
But to return to me.
Not that imparted knowledge doth
Diminish learning's store,
But books. I find, when often lent,
Return to me no more.
Would readers all this rule obey,
For good requite not ill.
These hints need not bepenn'd that they
Its dictates should fulfill.

Read slowly, pause frequently,


Think seriously.
Keep cleanly, return duly, [down.
With the corner of the leaves not turn'd
'
-2/7/07^^,
NATHANIEL H. BISHOP'S BOOKS.

FOUR MONTHS IN A SNEAK BOX: A Boat Voy-


age of Twenty-six Hundred Miles down the Ohio and
Mississippi Rivers, and along the Gulf of Mexico. With
numerous Maps and Illustrations. $2.50.

VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE : A Geographical


Journey of Twenty-five Hundred Miles from Quebec to
the Gulf of Mexico. With numerous Illustrations and
Maps, specially prepared for this work Crown 8vo.
$2.50.

A THOUSAND MILES' WALK across South America,


over the Pampas and the Andes. Illustrated. A new
edition. In press.

LEE AND SHEPARD, PUBLISHERS, BOSTON.


VOYAGE
OF

THE PAPER CANOE:


A GEOGKAPHICAL JOURNEY OF 2500 MILES, FROM
QUEBEC TO THE GULF OF MEXICO,
DURING THE YEARS 1874^5.

BY

NATHANIEL H. BISHOP,
AUTHOR OF "ONE THOUSAND MILES WALK ACROSS SOUTH AMERICA,"
1

AND CORRESPONDING MEMBER OF THE BOSTON SOCIETY


OF NATURAL HISTORY, AND OF THE NEW
YORK ACADEMY OF SCIENCES.

BOSTON:
LEE AND SHEPARD, PUBLISHERS.
NEW YORK: CHARLES T. DILLINGHAM.

EDINBURGH : DAVID DOUGLAS.


1882.
COPYRIGHT
1878,
BY N. H. BISHOP.

UNIVERSITY PRESS: JOHN WILSON & SON


CAMBRIDGE.
TO THE

SUPERINTENDENT, ASSISTANTS, AIDS, AND ALL


EMPLOYES OF THE

UNITED STATES COAST SURVEY BUREAU,


THE
" VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE "

IS RESPECTFULLY DEDICATED,

AS A SLIGHT EVIDENCE OF THE APPRECIATION BY ITS AUTHOR FOR


THEIR INTELLIGENT EFFORTS AND SELF-DENYING LABORS
IN THE SERVICE OF THEIR COUNTRY, SO PATIENTLY
AND SKILFULLY PERFORMED, UNDER MANY
DIFFICULTIES AND DANGERS.
INTRODUCTION.

THE author left Quebec, Dominion of Canada,


July 4, 1874, with a single assistant, in a wooden
canoe eighteen feet in length, bound for the Gulf of
Mexico. It was his intention to follow the natural

and artificial connecting watercourses of the con-


tinent in the most direct line southward to the gulf

coast of Florida, making portages as seldom as

possible, to show how few were the interruptions to

a continuous water-way for vessels of light draught,


from the chilly, foggy, and rocky regions of the Gulf
of St. Lawrence in the north, to the semi-tropical
waters of the great Southern Sea, the waves of which
beat upon the sandy shores of the southernmost
United States. Having proceeded about four hun-
dred miles upon his voyage, the author reached
Troy, on the Hudson River, New York state, where
for several years E. Waters & Sons had been per-
fecting the construction of paper boats.
The advantages in using a boat of only fifty-eight

pounds weight, the strength and durability of which


had been well and satisfactorily tested, could not
v
VI INTRODUCTION.

be questioned, and the author dismissed his assist-


ant, and "paddled his own canoe" about two thou-
sand miles to the end of the journey. Though
frequently lost in the labyrinth of creeks and marshes
which skirt the southern coast of his country, the
author's difficulties were greatly lessened by the use
of the valuable and elaborate charts of the United
States Coast Survey Bureau, to the faithful exe-
cuters of which he desires to give unqualified and

grateful praise.
To an unknown wanderer among the creeks, rivers,
and sounds of the coast, the courteous treatment of
the Southern people was most gratifying. The
author can only add to this expression an extract
from his reply to the address of the Mayor of St.
Mary's, Georgia, which city honored him with an
ovation and presentation of flags after the comple-
tion of his voyage :

"
Since my little paper canoe entered southern
waters upon her geographical errand, from the
capes of the Delaware to your beautiful St. Mary's,
I have been
deeply sensible of the value of
Southern hospitality. The oystermen and fishermen
living along the lonely beaches of the eastern shore
of Maryland and Virginia the surfmen and light-
;

house keepers of Albemarle, Pamplico, and Core


sounds, in North Carolina ; the ground-nut planters
who inhabit the uplands that skirt the network of

creeks, marshes, ponds, and sounds from Bogue


Inlet to Cape Fear ; the piny-woods people, lum-
INTRODUCTION. Vii

bermen, and turpentine distillers on the little bluffs


that jut into the fastnesses of the great swamps of the
crooked Waccamaw River ; the representatives of
the once powerful rice-planting aristocracy of the
Santee and Peedee rivers the colored men of the
;

beautiful sea-islands along the coast of Georgia ;

the Floridians living between the St. Mary's River


and the Suwanee the wild river of song ; the
islanders on the Gulf of Mexico where I terminated

my long journey ;
all have contributed to make the

Paper Canoe a success."


' '

Voyage of the
After returning from this paper-canoe voyage, the
author embarked alone, December 2, 1875, in a cedar
duck-boat twelve feet in length, from the head of
the Ohio River, at Pittsburgh, Pennsylvania, and
followed the Ohio and Mississippi rivers over two
thousand miles to New Orleans, where he made a
portage through that city eastwardly to Lake Pont-
chartrain, and rowed along the shores of the Gulf
of Mexico six or seven hundred miles, to Cedar
Keys, Florida, the terminus of his paper-canoe
voyage.
While on these two voyages, the author rowed over
fivethousand miles, meeting with but one accident,
the overturning of his canoe in Delaware Bay.
He returned to his home with his boats in good

condition, and his note-books, charts, &c., in an


excellent state of preservation.
At the request of the "Board on behalf of the
United States Executive Department" of the Cen-
Vlll INTRODUCTION.

tennial Exhibition at Philadelphia, the


paper canoe
"Maria Theresa," and the cedar duck-boat "Cen-
tennial Republic," were deposited in the Smithsonian
Department of the United States Government build-
ing, during the summer and fall of 1876.
The maps, which show the route followed by
the paper canoe, have been drawn and engraved
by contract at the United States Coast Survey Bu-

reau, and are on a scale of y. 315-^,^75-0' As tne work


is based on the results of actual
surveys, these
maps may be considered, for their size, the most

complete of the United States coast ever presented


to the public.

Much credit is due to Messrs. Waud and Merrill


for the artistic results of their pencils, and to Messrs.

John Andrew & Son for their skill in engraving the


illustrations.

To the readers of the author's first book of trav-


"
els, The Pampas and Andes : a Thousand Miles'
Walk across South America," which journey was
undertaken when he was but seventeen years of
their many kind and
age, the writer would say that
appreciative letters have prompted
him to send forth
"
this second book of travels the Voyage of the
Paper Canoe."
LAKE GEORGE, WARREN COUNTY, N. Y.,

JANUARY i, 1878.
CONTENTS.

CHAPTER I.

THE APPROACHES TO THE WATER-WAY OF THE


CONTINENT.
ISLAND OF ST. PAUL. THE PORTALS OF THE GULF OF ST.
LAWRENCE. THE EXTINCT AUK. ANTICOSTI ISLAND.
ICEBERGS. SAILORS' SUPERSTITIONS. THE ESTUARY OF
THE ST. LAWRENCE. TADOUSAC. THE SAGUENAY RIV-
ER. WHITE WHALES. QUEBEC i

CHAPTER II.

FROM QUEBEC TO SOREL.


THE WATER- WAY INTO THE CONTINENT. THE WESTERN AND
THE SOUTHERN ROUTE TO THE GULF OF MEXICO. THE
MAYETA. COMMENCEMENT OF THE VOYAGE. ASCENT OF
THE RIVER ST. LAWRENCE. LAKE OF ST. PETER. ACA-
DIAN TOWN OF SOREL 12

CHAPTER III.

FROM THE ST. LAWRENCE RIVER TO TICONDEROGA,


LAKE CHAMPLAIN.
THE RICHELIEU RIVER. ACADIAN SCENES. ST. OURS. ST.
ANTOINE. MARKS. BELCEIL. CHAMBLY CANAL. ST.
ST.
JOHNS. LAKE CHAMPLAIN. THE GREAT SHIP CANAL.
DAVID BODFISH'S CAMP. THE ADIRONDACK SURVEY. A
CANVAS BOAT. DIMENSIONS OF LAKE CHAMPLAIN. PORT
KENT. AUSABLE CHASM. ARRIVAL AT TICONDEROGA . . 22

ix
X CONTENTS.

CHAPTER IV.

FROM LAKES GEORGE AND CHAMPLAIN TO THE


HUDSON RIVER.
THE DISCOVERY OF LAKE GEORGE BY FATHER JOGUES. A
PEDESTRIAN JOURNEY. THE HERMIT OF THE NARROWS.
CONVENT OF ST. MARY'S OF THE LAKE. THE PAULIST
FATHERS. CANAL ROUTE FROM LAKE CHAMPLAIN TO AL-
BANY. BODFISH RETURNS TO NEW JERSEY. THE LITTLE
FLEET IN ITS HAVEN OF REST 42

CHAPTER V.

THE AMERICAN PAPER BOAT AND ENGLISH CANOES.


THE PECULIAR CHARACTER OF THE PAPER BOAT. THE HIS-
TORY OF THE ADOPTION OF PAPER FOR BOATS. A BOY'S
INGENUITY. r THE PROCESS OF BUILDING PAPER BOATS DE-
SCRIBED. COLLEGE CLUBS ADOPTING THEM. THE GREAT
VICTORIES WON BY PAPER OVER WOODEN SHELLS IN iSj6 . .
57

CHAPTER VI.

FROM TROY TO PHILADELPHIA.


PAPER CANOE MARIA THERESA. THE START. THE DESCENT
OF THE HUDSON RIVER. CROSSING THE UPPER BAY OF
NEW YORK. PASSAGE OF THE KILLS. RARITAN RIVER.
THE CANAL ROUTE FROM NEW BRUNSWICK TO THE DELA-
WARE RIVER. FROM BORDENTOWN TO PHILADELPHIA ... 71

CHAPTER VII.

FROM PHILADELPHIA TO CAPE HENLOPEN.


DESCENT OF DELAWARE RIVER. MY FIRST CAMP. BOMBAY
HOOK. MURDERKILL CREEK. A STORM IN DELAWARE
BAY. CAPSIZING OF THE CANOE. A SWIM FOR LIFE.
THE PERSIMMON GROVE. WILLOW GROVE INN. THE
LIGHTS OF CAPES MAY AND HENLOPEN 98
CONTENTS. XI

CHAPTER VIII.

FROM CAPE HENLOPEN TO NORFOLK, VIRGINIA.


THE PORTAGE TO LOVE CREEK. THE DELAWARE WHIPPING-
POST. REHOBOTH AND INDIAN RIVER BAYS. A PORTAGE
TO LITTLE ASSAWAMAN BAY. ISLE OF WIGHT BAY. WIN-
CHESTER PLANTATION. CHINCOTEAGUE. WATCHAPREAGUE
INLET. COBB'S ISLAND. CHERRYSTONE. ARRIVAL AT
NORFOLK. THE "LANDMARK'S" ENTERPRISE 114

CHAPTER IX.

FROM NORFOLK TO CAPE HATTERAS.


THE ELIZABETH RIVER. THE CANAL. NORTH LANDING
RIVER. CURRITUCK SOUND. ROANOKE ISLAND. VISIT
TO BODY ISLAND LIGHT-HOUSE. A ROMANCE OF HIS-
TORY. PAMPLICO SOUND. THE PAPER CANOE ARRIVES
AT CAPE HATTERAS 148

CHAPTER X.

FROM CAPE HATTERAS TO CAPE FEAR, NORTH


CAROLINA.
CAPE HATTERAS LIGHT. HABITS OF BIRDS. STORM AT
HATTERAS INLET. MILES OF WRECKS. THE YACHT JU-
LIA SEARCHING FOR THE PAPER CANOE. CHASED BY
PORPOISES. MARSH TACKIES. OCRACOKE INLET. A
GRAVEYARD BEING SWALLOWED UP BY THE SEA. CORE
SOUND. THREE WEDDINGS AT HUNTING QUARTERS.
MOREHEAD CITY. NEWBERN. SWANSBORO. A PEANUT
PLANTATION. THE ROUTE TO CAPE FEAR 180

CHAPTER XL
FROM CAPE FEAR TO CHARLESTON, SOUTH
CAROLINA.
A PORTAGE TO LAKE WACCAMAW. SUBMERGED SWAMPS.
'

NIGHT AT A TURPENTINE DISTILLERY. A DISMAL WIL-


Xll CONTENTS.

DERNESS. OWLS AND MISTLETOE. CRACKERS AND NE-


GROES. ACROSS THE SOUTH CAROLINA LINE. A CRACK-
ER'S IDEA OF HOSPITALITY. POT BLUFF. PEEDEE
RIVER. GEORGETOWN. WINYAH BAY. THE RICE PLAN-
TATIONS OF THE SANTEE RIVERS. A NIGHT WITH THE
SANTEE NEGROES. ARRIVAL AT CHARLESTON . . 216

CHAPTER XII.
ft

FROM CHARLESTON TO SAVANNAH, GEORGIA.


THE INTERIOR WATER ROUTE TO JEHOSSEE ISLAND. GOV-
ERNOR AIKEN'S MODEL RICE PLANTATION. LOST IN THE
HORNS. ST. HELENA SOUND. LOST IN THE NIGHT.
THE PHANTOM SHIP. THE FINLANDER'S WELCOME. A
NIGHT ON THE EMPEROR'S OLD YACHT. THE PHOSPHATE
MINES. COOSAW AND BROAD RIVERS PORT ROYAL
SOUND AND CALIBOGUE SOUND. CUFFY'S HOME. AR-
RIVAL IN GEORGIA. RECEPTIONS AT GREENWICH SHOOT-
ING-PARK 261

CHAPTER XIII.

FROM THE SAVANNAH RIVER TO FLORIDA.


ROUTE TO THE SEA ISLANDS OF GEORGIA. STORM-BOUND
ON GREEN ISLAND. OSSABAW ISLAND. ST. CATHERINE'S
SOUND. SAPELO ISLAND. THE MUD OF MUD RIVER.
NIGHT IN A NEGRO CABIN. "DE SHOUTINGS" ON DOBOY
ISLAND. BROUGHTON ISLAND. ST. SIMON'S AND JEKYL
ISLANDS. INTERVIEW WITH AN ALLIGATOR. A NIGHT
IN JOINTER HAMMOCK. CUMBERLAND ISLAND AND ST.
MARY'S RIVER. FAREWELL TO THE SEA 291

CHAPTER XIV.

ST. MARY'S RIVER AND THE SUWANEE WILDERNESS.


A PORTAGE TO DUTTON. DESCENT OF THE ST. MARY'S
RIVER. FKTE GIVEN BY THE CITIZENS TO THE PAPER
CONTENTS. Xlll

CANOE. THE PROPOSED CANAL ROUTE ACROSS FLORIDA.


A PORTAGE TO THE SUWANEE RIVER. A NEGRO SPEAKS
ON ELECTRICITY AND THE TELEGRAPH. A FREEDMAN'S
SERMON 3 r3

CHAPTER XV.
DOWN UPON THE SUWANEE RIVER.

THE RICH FOLIAGE OF THE RIVER. COLUMBUS. ROLINS'


BLUFF. OLD TOWN HAMMOCK. A HUNTER KILLED BY
A PANTHER. DANGEROUS SERPENTS. CLAY LANDING.
THE MARSHES OF THE COAST. BRADFORD'S ISLAND.
MY LAST CAMP. THE VOYAGE ENDED 334
LIST OF MAPS
DRAWN AND ENGRAVED AT THE

UNITED STATES COAST SURVEY BUREAU,


FOR THE "VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE."

PAGE
i. GENERAL MAP OF ROUTES FOLLOWED BY THE AU-
THOR DURING TWO VOYAGES MADE TO THE GULF
OF MEXICO, .
Opposite i

GUIDE MAPS OF CANOE ROUTE.


2. FROM QUEBEC, CANADA, TO PLATTSBURGH, NEW YORK
STATE, 12

3. FROM PLATTSBURGH TO ALBANY, 42

4. FROM ALBANY TO NEW YORK CITY, 71

5. FROM NEW YORK CITY TO CAPE HENLOPEN, DEL-


AWARE, 98
6. FROM CAPE HENLOPEN, DELAWARE, TO NORFOLK,
VIRGINIA, 114

7. FROM NORFOLK, VIRGINIA, TO BOGUE INLET, NORTH


CAROLINA, 148
8. FROM BOGUE INLET, NORTH CAROLINA, TO BULL'S
BAY, SOUTH CAROLINA, 180

9. FROM BULL'S BAY, SOUTH CAROLINA, TO ST. SIMON'S

SOUND, GEORGIA, 261

10. FROM ST. SIMON'S SOUND, GEORGIA, TO CEDAR KEYS,


FLORIDA, 317

xiv
ILLUSTRATIONS.
ENGRAVED BY JOHN ANDREW & SON.

PA.GK

HOME OF THE ALLIGATOR. (Frontispiece.)

GREAT AUK (A lea impennis). Extinct n


ANCHORED AT LAST, 56

A FULL-RIGGED NAUTILUS CANOE, 57

THE ROB ROY CANOE, 68

THE ABORIGINAL TYPE, 74


Photographed at Disco, Greenland.

THE IMPROVED TYPE. PAPER CANOE MARIA THE-

RESA, 74

A CAPSIZE IN DELAWARE BAY, 108

DELAWARE WHIPPING-POST AND PILLORY, 147

BODY ISLAND LIGHT HOUSE, 179

CROSSING HATTERAS INLET, 190

RECEPTION AT CHARLESTON POST-OFFICE, 259

THE PANTHER'S LEAP, 345

THE VOYAGE ENDED, 351

XV
MAP OF ROUTES
FOLLOWED BY N.H. BISHOP
IN PAPER CANOE"\JARIA THERESA"
AND DUCK BO AT"CENTENN AL REPUBLIC"
i

I874--J876

Copyru/la.. LU73. by
JA
CHAPTER I.

THE APPROACHES TO THE WATER-WAY OF THE


CONTINENT. *

ISLAND OF ST. PAUL. THE PORTALS OF THE GULF OF ST.


LAWRENCE. THE EXTINCT
AUK. ANTICOSTI ISLAND.
ICEBERGS. SAILORS' SUPERSTITIONS. THE ESTUARY OF THE
ST. LAWRENCE. TADOUSAC. THE SAGUENAY RIVER. WHITE
WHALES. QUEBEC.

on his to the ports of the


WHILELawrencepassage
St.River, the mariner first

sights the little island of St. Paul, situated in


the waste of waters between Cape Ray, the south-
western point of Newfoundland on the north,
and Cape North, the northeastern projection of
Cape Breton Island on the south. Across this
entrance to the Gulf of St. Lawrence from cape
tocape is a distance of fifty-four nautical miles;
and about twelve miles east-northeast from Cape.
North the island of St. Paul, with its three hills
and two light-towers, rises from the sea with
deep waters on every side.
This wide inlet into the gulf may be called the
2 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

middle portal,for at the northern end of New-

foundland, between the great island and the


coast of Labrador, another entrance exists,
which is known as the Straits of Belle Isle,
and is sometimes called " the shorter passage
from England." Still to the south of the mid-
dle entrance is another and a very narrow one,
known as the Gut of Canso, which separates
the island of Cape Breton from Nova Scotia.
Through this contracted thoroughfare the tides
4
run with great force.
One hundred
years ago, as the seaman ap-
proached the dangerous entrance of St. Paul,
now brightened at night by its light-towers, his
heart was cheered by the sight of immense
flocks of a peculiar sea-fowl, now extinct.
When he saw upon the water the Great Auk
(Alca impennis}, which he ignorantly called
"a pengwin," he knew that land was near at
hand, for while he met other species far out
upon the broad Atlantic, the Great Auk, his
"pengwin," kept near the coast. Not only was
this now extinct bird his indicator of proximity
to the land, but so strange were its habits, and
so innocent was its nature, that it permitted
itself to be captured by boat-loads; and thus
were the ships re-victualled at little cost or
trouble. Without any market-value a century
ago, the Great Auk now, as a stuffed skin, rep-
resents a value of fifteen hundred dollars in
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 3

gold. There are but seventy-two specimens of


this bird in the museums of Europe and Amer-

ica,besides a few skeletons, and sixty-five of its


eggs. It was called in ancient days Gare-fowl,

and was the Geirfugl of the Icelander.


Captain Whitbourne, who wrote in the reign
of James the First, quaintly said: "These Pen-
gwins are as bigge as Geese, and flye not, for
they have but a little short wing, and they mul-
tiply so infinitely upon a certain flat island that
men drive them from thence upon a board into

by hundreds at a time, as if God had


their boats
made the innocency of so poor a creature to
become such an admerable instrument for the
sustenation of man."
"
In a copy of the English Pilot, fourth book,"

published in 1761, which I


presented to the
librar} of the United States Coast
r
Survey, is

found this early description of this now extinct


American bird: 'They never go beyond the
bank [Newfoundland] as others do, for they are
always on it, or in it, several of them together,
sometimes more but never less than two to-
gether. They are large fowls, about the size
of a goose, a coal-black head and back, with a
w hite belly and a milk-white spot under one of
r

their eyes, which nature has ordered to be under


their right eye."
Thus has the greed of the sailor and pot-
hunter swept from the face of the earth an old
4 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

pilot a trusty aid to navigation. Now the


light-house, the fog-gun, and the improved chart
have taken the place of the extinct auk as aids
to navigation, and the sailor of to-day sees the

bright flashes of St. Paul's lights when nearly


twenty miles at sea. Having passed the little
isle,the ship enters the great Gulf of St. Law-
rence, and passes the Magdalen Islands, shaping
its course as wind and weather permit towards
the dreaded, rocky coast of Anticosti. From the
entrance of the gulf to the island of Anticosti
the course to be followed is northwesterly about
one hundred and thirty-five nautical miles. The
islandwhich divides an upper arm of the gulf
into two wide channels is one hundred and
twenty-three miles long, and from ten to thirty
miles wide. Across the entrance of this great
arm, or estuary, from the high cape of Gaspe
on the southern shore of the mainland to Anti-
costi in the narrowest place, is a distance of
about forty miles, and is called the South Chan-
nel. From the north side of the island and near
its west end to the coast of Labrador the North

Channel is fifteen miles wide. The passage from


St. Paul to Anticosti is at times dangerous. Here
is an area of
strong currents, tempestuous winds,
and dense fogs. When the wind is fair for an
upward run, it is the wind which usually brings
misty weather. Then, from the icy regions of
the Arctic circle, from the Land of Desolation,
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 5

come through the Straits of Belle Isle


floating
the dangerous bergs and ice-fields. Early in the
spring these ice rafts are covered with colonies
of seals which resort to them for the purpose of
giving birth to their young. On
these icy cra-
dles, rocked by the restless waves, tens of thou-
sands of young seals are nursed for a few days;
then, answering the loud calls of their mothers,
they accompany them into the briny deep, there
to follow the promptings of their instincts. The
loud roarings of the old seals on these ice rafts
can be heard in a quiet night for several miles,
and strike terror into the heart of the super-
stitious sailor who is ignorant of the origin of
the tumult.

Frequently dense fogs cover the water, and


while slowly moving along, guided only by the
needle, a warning sound alarms the watchful
master. the heavy mists comes the
Through
roar of breaking waters. He listens. The dull,
swashy noise of waves meeting with resistance
is now
plainly heard. The atmosphere becomes
suddenly chilled: it is the breath of the ice-

berg!
Then the shrill cry of "All hands on deck! "
startles the watch below from the bunks. Anx-
iously now does the whole ship's company lean
upon the weather-rail and peer out into the thick
air with an earnestness born of terror. " Surely,"
" I am
says the master to his mate, past the Mag-
6 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

dalens, and still far from Anticosti, yet we have


breakers; which way can we turn?" The riddle
solves itself, for out of the gloom come whitened
walls, beautiful but terrible to behold.
Those terror-stricken sailors watch the slowly
moving berg as it drifts past their vessel, fearing
that their own ship will be drawn towards it
from the peculiar power of attraction they believe
the iceberg to possess. And as they watch,
against the icy base of the mountain in the sea
the waves beat and break as if expending their
forces upon a rocky shore. Down the furrowed
sides of the disintegrating berg streamlets trickle,
and miniature cascades leap, mingling their
waters with the briny sea. The intruder slowly
drifts out of sight, disappearing in the gloom,
while the sailor thanks his lucky stars that he has
rid himself of another danger. The ill-omened
Anticosti, the graveyard of many seamen, is
yet
to be passed. The ship skirts along its southern
shore, a coast destitute of bays or harbors of
any kind, rock-bound and inhospitable.
Wrecks of vessels strew the rocky shores, and
four light-houses
o warn the mariner of danger.
o
Once past the island the ship is well within the
estuary of the gulf into which the St. Lawrence
River flows, contributing the waters of the great
lakes of the continent to the sea. As the north
coast approached the superstitious sailor is
is

again alarmed if, perchance, the compass-needle


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 7

shows sympathy with some disturbing element,


the cause of which he believes to exist in the
mountains which rise along the shore. He re-
peats the stories of ancient skippers, of vessels
having been lured out of their course by the
deviation of the guiding-needle, which suc-
cumbed to the potent influence exerted in those
hills of iron ore; heeding not the fact that the

disturbing agent is the iron on board of his own


ship, and not the magnetic oxide of the distant
mines.
The ship being now within the estuary of the
St. Lawrence River, must encounter many risks
before she reaches the true mouth of the river,
at the Bic Islands.
The shores along this arm ofthe gulf are wild
and sombre. Rocky precipices frown upon the
swift tidal current that rushes past their bases.
A few small settlements of fishermen and pilots,
like Metis, Father Point, and Rimousky, are
discovered at long intervals along the coast.
In these St. Lawrence hamlets, and through-
out Lower Canada, a patois is spoken which is
unintelligible to the Londoner or Parisian; and
these villagers, the descendants of the French
colonists, may be said to be a people destitute
of a written language, and strangers to a litera-

ture.
While holding a commission from Francis the
First, king of France, Jacques Cartier discovered
8 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the Gulf of St. Lawrence, during his first voy-


age of exploration in the new world. He en-
tered the gulf on St. Lawrence's day, in the
spring of 1534, and named it in honor of the
event. Cartier explored no farther to the west
than about the mouth of the estuary which is
divided by the island of Anticosti. It was dur-

ing his second voyage, in the following year,


that he discovered and explored the great river.
Of the desolate shores of Labrador, on the
north coast, he said, " It might as well as not
be taken for the country assigned by God to
Cain."
The distance from Quebec to Cape Gaspe,
measured upon a course which a steamer would
be compelled to take, is four hundred and seven
statute miles. The ship first enters the current
of the river St. Lawrence at the two Bic
Islands, where it has a width *of about twenty
miles. By consulting most maps the reader will
find that geographers carry the river nearly two
hundred miles beyond its usual current. In fact,

they appropriate the whole estuary, which, in


places, is nearly one hundred miles in width,
and call it a river a river which lacks the
characteristics of a river, the currents of which
vary with the winds and tidal influences, and
the waters of which are as salt as those of the
briny deep.
Here, in the mouth of the river, at the Bics,
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 9

secure anchorage for vessels may be found; but


below, in the estuary, for a distance of more
than two hundred and forty-five miles, to Gaspe,
there is but one port of refuge, that of Seven
Islands, on the north coast.
As the ship ascends the river from Bic Islands,
a passage of about one hundred and sixty statute
miles to Quebec, she struggles against a strong
current. Picturesque islands and little villages,
such as St. Andre, St. Anne, St. Rogue, St. Jean,
and St. Thomas, relieve the monotony. But very
different is the winter aspect of this river, when
closed to navigation by ice from November until
spring. Of the many tributaries which give
strength to the current of the St. Lawrence and
contribute to its glory, the Saguenay River with
its remarkable scenery is counted one of the
wonders of our continent. It joins the great
river from the north shore, about one hundred
and thirty-four statute miles below Quebec.
Upon the bank, at its mouth, nestles the
left

little village of Tadousac, the summer retreat

of the governor-general of the Dominion of


Canada.
American history claims for the Roman Cath-
olic church of this settlement an age second

only to that of the old Spanish cathedral at St.


Augustine, Florida. For three hundred years
the storms of winter have beaten upon its walls,
but it stands a silent yet eloquent monument of
10 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the pious zeal of the ancient Fathers, who came


to conquer Satan in the wilderness of a new
world. The Saguenay has become the "Mecca"
of northern tourists, ever attracting them with
its wild and fascinating scenery. Capes Eternity
and Trinity guard the entrance to Eternity Bay.
The first towers sublimely to a height of eigh-
teen hundred feet, the other
only a little
is

lower. A
visit to this mysterious river, with its

deep, dark waters and picturesque views, will


repay the traveller for the discomforts of a long
and expensive journey.
Where the turbulent current of the Saguenay
mingles angrily with that of the St. Lawrence,
there may be seen disporting in the waves the
w hite whale
r
of aquariums, which is not a whale
but a true porpoise (Delphino-pterus ca-
at all,

todon, as he is now called by naturalists), having


teeth in the jaws, and being destitute of the

fringed bone of the whalebone whales. This


interesting creature is very abundant in the Arc-
tic Ocean on both the Atlantic and Pacific sides,

and has its southern limits in the Gulf of St.

Lawrence, although one is occasionally seen in


the Bay of Fundy, and it is reported to have
been observed about Cape Cod, on the Massa-
chusetts coast.
As
the ship nears the first great port of the
St. Lawrence River, the large and well culti-
vated island of Orleans is passed, and the bold
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. II

Quebec, high up on the face of


fortifications of
Point Diamond, and flanked by the houses of the
French city, break upon the vision of the mari-
ner. To the right, and below the city, which
Champlain founded, and in which his unknown
ashes repose, are the beautiful Falls of Montmo-
rency, gleaming in all the whiteness of their
falling waters and mists, like the bridal veil of a

giantess. The vessel has safely made her pas-


sage, and now comes to anchor in the Basin of
Quebec. The sails are furled, and the heart of
the sailor is merry, for the many dangers which
beset the ship while approaching and entering
the great water-way of the continent are now
over.

p
12 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

CHAPTER II.

FROM QUEBEC TO SOREL.


THE WATER-WAY INTO THE CONTINENT. THE WESTERN AND
THE SOUTHERN ROUTE TO THE GULF OF MEXICO. THE MAYETA.
COMMENCEMENT OF THE VOYAGE. ASCENT OF THE RIVER
ST. LAWRENCE. LAKE OF ST. PETER. ACADIAN TOWN OF
SOREL.

canoe traveller can ascend the St. Law-


THE
rence River to Lake
Ontario, avoiding the
rapids and shoals by making use of seven canals
of a total length of forty-seven miles. He may
then skirt the shores of Lake Ontario, and enter
Lake Erie by the canal which passes around the
celebrated Falls of Niagara. From the last great
inland sea he can visit lakes Huron, Michigan,
and, with the assistance of a short canal, the

grandest of all, Superior. When he has reached


the town of Duluth, at the southwestern end of

Superior, which is the terminus of the Northern


Pacific Railroad, our traveller will have paddled

(following the contours of the land) over two


thousand miles from salt water into the Ameri-
can continent without having been compelled to
make a portage with his little craft. Let him
now make his first portage westward, over the
CANOE MAY ETA
Fnnii (Jut-lice Cuntntti In I'hiltxlninili X.)'.

anil Hii-Jiclifii
'.' -
"
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 13

railroad one hundred and from Du-


fifteen miles

luth, to the crossing of the Mississippi River at


Brainerd, and launch his boat on the Father of
Waters, which he may descend with but few
interruptions to below the Falls of St.
Anthony,
at Minneapolis; he will
or, if take his boat by
rail from Duluth, one hundred and fifty-five miles,
to St. Paul, he can launch his canoe, and follow
the steamboat to the Gulf of Mexico. This is
the longest, and may be called the canoeist's
western route to the great Southern Sea. In
St. Louis County, Minnesota, the water from
"
Seven Beaver Lakes " flows south-southwest,
and joins the Flood-Wood River; there taking
an easterly course towards Duluth, it empties
into Lake Superior. This is the St. Louis River,
the first tributary of the mighty St. Lawrence
system. From the head waters of the St. Louis
to the mouth of the St. Lawrence at Bic Islands,
where it enters the great estuary, the length of
this great water system, including the great
Lakes, is about two thousand miles. The area thus
drained by the St. Lawrence River is nearly six
millions of square miles. The largest craft can
ascend it to Quebec, and smaller ones to Mon-
treal; above which navigation being im-
city,

peded by rapids, the seven canals before men-


tioned have been constructed that vessels may
avoid this danger while voyaging to Lake On-
tario.
14 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

The southern and shorter coast route to the


gulf leaves the great river at the Acadian town
of Sorel, where the quiet Richelieu flows into
the St. Lawrence River. Of the two long routes
offered me I selected the southern, leaving the
other to be traversed at some future time. To
follow the contours of rivers, bays, and sounds,
a voyage of at least twenty-five hundred miles
was before me. It was my intention to explore
the connecting watercourses southward, without

making a single portage, as far as Cape Henlo-


pen, a sandy headland at the entrance of Dela-
ware Bay; there, by making short portages from
one watercourse to another, to navigate along
the interior of the Atlantic coast to the St. Mary's
River, which is a dividing line between Georgia
and Florida. From the Atlantic coast of south-
ern Georgia, I proposed to cross the peninsula
of Florida by way of the St. Mary's River, to
Okefenokee Swamp; thence, by portage, to the
Suwanee River, and by descending that stream
(the boundary line of a geographical division
eastern and middle Florida), to reach the coast
of the Gulf of Mexico, which was to be the ter-
minal point of my canoe journey. Charts, maps,
and sea-faring men had informed me that about

twenty-three hundred miles of the trip could be


made upon land-locked waters, but about two
hundred miles of voyaging must be done upon
the open Atlantic Ocean.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 15

As I now write, I smilingly remember how


erroneous were my advisers* for, while prose-

cuting my voyage, I was


but once upon the open
sea, and then through mistake and for only a
few minutes. Had I then known that I could
have followed the whole route in a small boat
upon strictly interior waters, I should have pad-
dled from the Basin of Quebec in the light
papei; canoe which I afterwards adopted at Troy,
and which carried me alone in safety two thou-
sand miles to the warm regions of the Gulf of
Mexico. The counsels of old seamen had influ-
enced me to adopt a large wooden clinker-built,
decked canoe, eighteen feet long, forty-five inches
beam, and twenty-four inches depth of hold,
which weighed, with oars, rudder, mast and sail,
above three hundred pounds. The Mayeta was
built by an excellent workman, Mr. J. S. Lam-

son, at Bordentown, New Jersey. The boat was


sharp each end, and the lines from amidships
at
to stem, and from amidships to sternpost, were
alike. She possessed that essential characteristic
of seaworthiness, abundant sheer. The deck was
pierced for a cockpit in the centre, which was
six feet long and surrounded by a high combing
to keep out water The builder had done his
best to make the Mayeta serve for rowing and
sailing a most difficult combination, and one
not usually successful.
On the morning of July 4, 1874, I entered
1 6 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the Basin of Quebec with my wooden canoe


and my waterman, one David Bodfish, a " shore-
man " of New Jersey. After weeks of prepara-
tion and weary travel by rail and by water, we
had steamed up the Gulf and the River of St.
Lawrence to this our most northern point of
departure. We viewed the frowning heights
upon which was perched the city of Quebec
with unalloyed pleasure, and eagerly scrambled
up the high banks to see the interesting old city.
The tide, which rises at the city piers eighteen
feet in the spring, during the neaps reaches only
thirteen feet. Late in the afternoon the incom-
ing tide promised to assist us in ascending the
river, the downward current of which runs with
torrent-like velocity, and with a depth abreast
the city of from sixteen to twenty fathoms.

Against this current powerful steamers run one


hundred and eighty miles up the river to Mon-
treal in eighteen hours, and descend in fourteen

hours, including two hours' stoppages at Sorel


and Three Rivers. At six o'clock p. M. we
pushed off into the river, which is about two-
thirds of a mile wide and com-
at this point,
menced our voyage; but gusts of wind
fierce
arose and drove us to the shelter of Mr. Hamil-
ton's lumber-yard on the opposite shore, where
we passed the night, sleeping comfortably upon
cushions which we spread on the narrow floor
of the boat. Sunday was to be spent in camp;
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 17

but when dawn appeared we were not allowed


to build a fire on the lumber pier, and were
forced to ascend the St. Lawrence in quest of a
retired spot above the landing of St. Croix, on
the right bank of the river. The tide had been
a high one when we beached our boat at the foot
of a bluff. Two hours later the receding tide
leftus a quarter of a mile from the current.
The river was fully two miles wide at this point,
and so powerful was its current that steamers
anchored in it were obliged to keep their wheels
slowly revolving to ease the strain on their
anchors. Early on Monday morning we beheld
with consternation that the tide did not reach
our boat, and by dint of hard labor we con-
structed a railroad from a neighboring fence,
and moved the Mayeta on rollers upon it over
the mud and the projecting reef of rocks some
five hundred feet to the water, then embarking,
rowed close along the shore to avoid the current.
A deep fog settled down upon us, and we were
driven to camp again on the left bank, where a
cataract tumbled over the rocks fifty or more
feet. Tuesday was a sunny day, but the usual
head wind greeted us. The water would rise
along-shore on tne flood three hours before the
downward current was checked in the channel
of the river. We
could not place any depend-
ence in the regularity of the tides, as strong
winds and freshets in the tributaries influence
1 8 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

them. Earlier in the season, as a writer re-


"
marks, upland waters have all run
until the

down, and the great rivers have discharged the


freshets caused by thawing of the snows in the

spring of the year, this current, in spite of tides,


will always run down." To the uninitiated the

spectacle a curious one, of the flood tide rising


is

and swelling the waters of a great river some


eight to ten feet, while the current at the surface
is
rapidly descending the course of the stream.
Finding that the wind usually rose and fell
with the sun, we now made it a rule to anchor
our boat during most of the day and pull against
the current at night. The moon and the bright
auroral lights made this task an agreeable one.
Then, too, we had Coggia's comet speeding
through the northern heavens, awakening many
an odd conjecture in the mind of my old salt.
In this high latitude day dawned before three
o'clock, and the twilight lingered so long that
we could read the fine print of a newspaper
without effort at a quarter to nine o'clock p. M.
The lofty shores that surrounded us at Quebec
gradually decreased in elevation, and the tides
affected the river less and less as we approached
Three Rivers, where they seemed to cease alto-
gether. We reached the great lumber station
of Three Rivers, which is located on the left
bank of the St. Lawrence, on Friday evening,
and moved our canoe into quiet waters near the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 19

entrance of Lake of St. Peter. Rain squalls


kept us close under our hatch-cloth till eleven
o'clock A. M. on Saturday, when, the wind being
fair, we determined to make an attempt to reach
Sorel, which would afford us a pleasant camping-
ground for Sunday.
Lake of St. Peter is a shoal sheet of water

twenty-two miles long and nearly eight miles


wide, a bad place to cross in a small boat in
windy weather. We set our sail and sped mer-
rily on,but the tempest pressed us sorely, com-
pelling us to take in our sail and scud under
bare poles until one o'clock, when we double-
reefed and set the sail. We now flew over the
short and swashy seas as blast after blast struck
our little craft. At three o'clock the wind slack-
ened, permitting us to shake out our reefs and
crowd on all sail. A
labyrinth of islands closed
the lake at its western end, and we looked with
anxiety to find among them an opening through
which we might pass into the river St. Law-
rence again. At five o'clock the wind veered
to the north, with squalls increasing in intensity.
We steered low, grassy island, which
for a
seemed to separate us from the river. The wind
was not free enough to permit us to weather it,
so we decided to beach the boat and escape the
furious tempest. But when we struck the marshy
island we kept moving on through the rushes
that covered it, and fairly sailed over its sub-
2O VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

merged soil into the broad water on the other


side. Bodfish earnestly advised the propriety of
"
anchoring here for the night, saying, It is too

rough to go on;" but the temptation held out


by the proximity to Sorel determined me to
take the risk and drive on. Again we bounded
out upon rough water, with the screeching tem-
pest upon us. David took the tiller, while I sat
upon the weather-rail to steady the boat. The
Mayeta was now to be put to a severe test; she
was to cross seas that could easily trip a boat of
her size; but the wooden canoe was worthy of
her builder, and flew like an affrighted bird over
the foaming waves across the broad water, to
the shelter of a wooded, half submerged island,
out of which rose, on piles, a little light-house.
Under this lee we crept along in safety. The
sail was furled, never to be used in storm again.

The wind went down with the sinking sun, and


a delightful calm favored us for our row up the
narrowing river, eight miles to the place of des-
tination.
Soon after nine o'clock we came upon the
Acadian town, Sorel, with its bright lights cheer-
ily flashing out upon us as we rowed past its
river front. The prow of our canoe was now
pointed southward toward the goal of our ambi-
tion, the great Mexican Gulf; and we were about
to ascend that historic stream, the lovely Riche-
lieu, upon whose gentle current, two hundred
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 21

and sixty-six years before, Champlain had as-


cended to the noble lake which bears his name,
and up which the missionary Jogues had been
carried an unwilling captive to bondage and to
torture.
We ascended the Richelieu, threading our
way among steam-tugs, canal-boats, and rafts,
to a fringe of rushes growing out of a shallow
flat on the left bank of the river, just above

the town. There, firmly staking the Mayeta


upon her soft bed of mud, secure from danger,
we enjoyed a peaceful rest through the calm
night which followed; and thus ended the rough
passage of one week's duration from Quebec
to Sorel.
22 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

CHAPTER III.

FROM THE ST. LAWRENCE RIVER TO TICONDE-


ROGA, LAKE CHAMPLAIN.

THE RICHELIEU RIVER. ACADIAN SCENES. ST. OURS. ST


ANTOINE. ST.MARKS. BELOZIL.CHAMBLY CANAL. ST.

JOHNS. LAKE CHAMPLAIN. GREAT SHIP-CANAL. -


THE
DAVID BODFISH'S CAMP. THE ADIRONDACK SURVEY. A
CANVAS BOAT. DIMENSIONS OF LAKE CHAMPLAIN. PORT.
KENT. AUSABLE CHASM. ARRIVAL AT TICONDEROGA.

was founded by Champlain, July 3,


QUEBEC
1680. During his first warlike expedition
into the land of the Iroquois the following year,
escorted by Algonquin and Montagnais Indian
allies, he ascended a river to which was after-
wards given the name of Cardinal Richelieu,
prime minister of Louis XIII. of France. This
stream, which is about eighty miles long, con-
nects the lake (which Champlain discovered
and named after himself) with the St Lawrence
River at a point one hundred and forty miles
above Quebec, and forty miles below Montreal.
The waters of lakes George and Champlain
flow northward, through the Richelieu River
into the St. Lawrence. The former stream flows
through a cultivated country, and upon its banks,
after leaving Sorel, are situate the little towns
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 23

of St. Ours,Rock, St. Denis, St. Antoine, St.


St.

Marks, Beloeil, Chambly, and St. Johns. Small


steamers, tug-boats, and rafts pass from the St.
Lawrence to Lake Champlain (which lies almost
wholly within the United States), following the
Richelieu to Chambly, where it is necessary, to
avoid rapids and shoals, to take the canal that
follows the river's bank twelve miles to St. Johns,
where the Canadian custom-house is located.
Sorel is called William Henry by the Anglo-
Saxon Canadians. The paper published in this
town of seven thousand inhabitants is La Ga-
zette de Sorel. The river which flows past the
town is called, without authority, by some geog-
raphers, Sorel River, and by others St. Johns,
because the town nearest its source is St. Johns,.
and another town at its mouth is Sorel. There
are about one hundred English-speaking families
in Sorel. The American Waterhouse Machinery

supplies the town with water pumped from the


river at a cost of one ton of coal per day. At
ten o'clock on Monday morning we resumed
our journey up the Richelieu, the current of
which was nothing compared with that of the
great river we had left. The average width of
the stream was about a quarter of a mile, and the

grassy shores were made picturesque by groves


of trees and quaintly constructed farm-houses.
It was a rich, pastoral land, abounding in fine

herds of cattle. The country reminded me of


24 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the Acadian region of Grand Pre, which I had


visited during the earlier part of the season.

Here, as there, were delightful pastoral scenes


and rich verdure; but here we still had the Aca-
dian peasants, while in the land of beautiful
Evangeline no longer were they to be found.
The New Englander now holds the titles to
those deserted old farms of the scattered colo-
nists. Our rowing was frequently interrupted
by heavy showers, which drove us under our
hatch-cloth for protection. The same large,
two-steepled stone churches, with their unpaint-
ed tin roofs glistening like silver in the sunlight,
marked out here, as on the high banks of the
St. Lawrence River, the site of a village.

Twelve miles of rowing brought us to St. Ours,


where we rested for the night, after wandering
through itsshaded and quaint streets. The vil-
lage boys and girls came down to see us off the
next morning, waving their kerchiefs, and shout-
"
ing ^Bon voyage ! Two miles above the town
we encountered a dam three feet high, which
deepened the water on a shoal above it. We
passed through a single lock in company with
rafts of pine logs which were on the way to New

York, to be used for spars. A lockage fee of


twenty-five cents for our boat the lock-master
told us would be collected at Chambly Basin.
It was a pull of nearly six miles to St. Denis,

where the same scene of comfort and plenty pre-


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 25

vailed. Women were washing clothes in large


iron pots at the river's edge, and the hum of the

spinning-wheels issued from the doorways of


the farm-houses. Beehives in the well-stocked
gardens were with honey, and the straw-
filled

thatched barns had their doors thrown wide


open, as though waiting to receive the harvest.
At intervals along the highway, over the grassy
hills, tall,white wooden crosses were erected;
for this people, like the Acadians of old, are very
"
religious. Down the current floated pin-flats,"
a curious scow-like boat, which carries a square

sail,and makes good time only when running


before the wind. St. Antoine and St. Marks
were passed, and the isolated peak of St. Hilaire
loomed up grandly twelve hundred feet on the
right bank of the Richelieu, opposite the town
ofBelceil. One mile above Belceil the Grand
Trunk Railroad crosses the stream, and here we
passed the night. Strong winds and rain squalls
interrupted our progress. At Chambly Basin
we tarried until the evening of July 1 6, before
entering the canal. Chambly is a watering-
place for Montreal people, who come here to
enjoy the fishing, which is said to be fair.

We had ascended one water-step at St. Ours.


Here we had eight steps to ascend within the
distance of one mile. By means of eight locks,
each one hundred and ten feet long by twenty-
two wide, the Mayeta was lifted seventy-five
26 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

feet and one inch inheight to the upper level of


the canal. The lock-masters were courteous,
and wished us the usual * bon voyage!" This
canal was built thirty-four years prior to my visit.
By ten o'clock p. M. we had passed the last lock,
and went into camp in a depression in the bank
of the canal. The journey was resumed at half

past three o'clock the following morning, and


the row of twelve miles to St. Johns was a de-

lightful one. The


lock (the only one at St.
last

Johns) was passed, and we had a full clearance


at the Dominion custom-house before noon.
Wewere again on the Richelieu, with about
twenty-three miles between us and the boundary
line of the United States and Canada, and with

very little current to impede us. As dusk ap-


proached we
passed a dismantled old fort, situ-
ated upon an island called He aux Noix, and
entered a region inhabited by the large bull-frog,
where we camped for the night, amid the dolo-
rous voices of these choristers. On Saturday,
the 1 8th, at an early hour, we were pulling for
the United States, which was about six miles
from our camping-ground. The Richelieu wid-
ened, and we entered Lake Champlain, passing
Fort Montgomery, which is about one thousand
feet south of the boundary Champlain has
line.

a width of three fourths of a mile at Fort Mont-


gomery, and at Rouse's Point expands to two
miles and three quarters. The erection of the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 27

fortwas commenced soon after 1812, but in


1818 the work was suspended, as some one dis-
covered that the site was in Canada, and the
cognomen of Fort Blunder was applied. In the
Webster treaty of 1842, England ceded the
ground to the United States, and Fort Mont-
gomery was finished at a cost of over half a mil-
lion of dollars.
At Rouse's Point, which lies on the west shore
of Lake Champlain about one and one-half miles
south of its confluence with the Richelieu, the
Mayeta was inspected by the United States cus-
tom-house officer, and nothing contraband being
discovered, the little craft was permitted to con-
tinue her voyage.
At the northern end of the harbor of Rouse's
Point is the terminus of the Ogdensburg and the
Champlain and St. Lawrence railroads. The
Vermont Central Railroad connects with the
above by means of a bridge twenty-two hundred
feet in length, which crosses the lake. Before
proceeding further it may interest the reader of
practical mind to know that a very important
movement on foot to facilitate the navigation
is

of vessels between the great Lakes, St. Lawrence


River, and Champlain, by the construction of
a ship-canal. The Caughnawaga Ship Canal
"
Company, incorporated by special act of the
Dominion of Parliament of Canada, i2th May,
1870," (capital, three million dollars; shares, one
28 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

hundred dollars each,) with a board of directors


composed of citizens of the United States and
Canada, has issued its prospectus, from which I
extract the following:
?
The commissioners of public works, in
their report of 1859, approved by government,
finally settled the question of route, by declaring
?
that, after a patient and mature consideration of
all the surveys and reports, we are of opinion
that the line following the Chambly Canal and
then crossing to Lake St. Louis near Caughna-
waga, is that which combines and affords in the

greatest degree the advantages contemplated


all

by this improvement, and which has been ap-


proved by Messrs. Mills, Swift, and Gamble.'
The company's Act of Incorporation is
rr
in

every respect complete and comprehensive in its

details. It empowers thecompany to survey, to


take, appropriate, have and hold, to and for the
use of them and their successors, the line and
boundaries of a canal between the St. Lawrence
and Lake Champlain, to build and erect the
same, to select such sites as may be necessary
for basins and docks, as may be considered ex-

pedient by the directors, and to purchase and


dispose of same, with any water-power, as may
be deemed best by the directors for the use and
profit of the company.
"
It also empowers the company to cause their
canal to enter into the Chambly Canal, and to
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 29

widen, deepen, and enlarge the same, not less in


size than the present St. Lawrence canals; also
the company may take, hold, and use any por-
tion of the Chambly Canal, and the works there-
with connected, and all the tolls, receipts, and
revenues thereof, upon terms to be settled and
agreed upon between the company and the gov-
ernor in council.
:<r

The cost of the canal, with locks of three


hundred feet by forty-five, and with ten feet six
inches the mitre-sill, is now estimated at two
million five hundred thousand dollars, and the
time for its construction may not exceed two

years after^ breaking ground.


"
Probably no question is of more vital impor-
tance to Canada and the western and eastern
United States than the subject of transportation.
The increasing commerce of the Great West, the
rapidity with which the population has of late
flowed into that vast tract of country to the west
and northwest of lakes Erie, Michigan, Huron,
and Superior, have served to convince all well-
informed commercial men that the means of
transit between that country and the seaboard
are far too limited even for the present necessi-
ties of trade; hence it becomes a question of uni-

versal interest how the products of the field, the


mine, and the forest can be most cheaply for-
warded to the consumer. Near the geographical
centre of North America is a vast plateau two
30 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

thousand feet above the level of the sea, drained


by the Mississippi to the south, by the St. Law-
rence to the east, and by the Saskatchewan and
McKenzie to the north. This vast territory
would have been valueless but for the water
lines which afford cheap transport between it
and the great markets of the world.
"
Canada has improved the St. Lawrence by
canals round the rapids of the St. Lawrence, and
by the Welland Canal, connecting lakes Erie and
Ontario, twenty-eight miles in length with a fall

of two hundred and sixty feet, capable of pass-


ing vessels of four hundred tons. The St. Law-
rence, from the east end of Lake Ontario, has a
fallof two hundred and twenty feet, overcome
by seven short canals of an aggregate length of
forty-seven miles, capable of passing vessels of
six hundred and fifty tons. The Richelieu River
is connected with Lake Champlain by a canal
of twelve miles from Chambly. A
canal of one
mile in length, at the outlet of Lake Superior,
connects that lake with Lake Huron, and has
two locks, which will pass vessels of two thou-
sand tons. New York has built a canal from
Buffalo, on Lake Erie, and from Oswego, on
Lake Ontario, to Albany, on the Hudson River,
of three hundred and sixty and of two hundred
and nine miles, capable of passing boats of two
hundred and ten tons; and she has also con-
structed a canal from the Hudson River into
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 3!

Lake Champlain of sixty-five miles, which can


pass boats of eighty tons.
"
Such is the nature of the navigation between
tide-water on the Hudson and St. Lawrence and
the upper lakes. The magnitude of the com-
merce of the Northwest has compelled the en-
largement of the Erie and Oswego canals from
boats of seventy-eight to two hundred and ten
tons, while the St. Lawrence and Welland canals
have also been enlarged since their first con-
struction. A
further enlargement of the Erie
and Champlain canals is now strongly urged in
consequence of the want of the necessary facili-
tiesof transport for the ever increasing western
trade. The
object of the Caughnawaga Ship-
canal connect Lake Champlain with the St.
is to
Lawrence by the least possible distance, and
with the smallest amount of lockage. When
built, it will enable the vessel or propeller to
sail from the head of lakes Superior or Michigan
without breaking bulk, and will enable such ves-
sels to land and receive cargo at Burlington and

Whitehall, from whence western freights can be


carried to and from Boston, and throughout New

England, by railway cheaper than by any other


route.
"
It will possess the advantage, when the Wel-
land Canal enlarged and the locks of the St.
is

Lawrence Canal lengthened, of passing vessels


of eight hundred and fifty tons' burden, and with
32 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

that size of vessel (impossible on any other route)


of improved model, with facilities for loading and
discharging cargoes at both ends of the route, in
the length of the voyage without transshipment,
in having the least distance between any of
the lake ports and a seaport, and in having the
shortest length of taxed canal navigation. The
construction of the Caughnawaga Canal, when
carried out, will remedy the difficulties which
now exist and stand in the way of an uninter-
rupted water communication between the west-
ern states and the Atlantic seaboard."
From Rouse's Point we proceeded to a pic-

turesque point which jutted into the lake below


Chazy Landing, and was sheltered by a grove
of trees into which we hauled the Mayeta. Bod-
fish's woodcraft enabled him to construct a wig-

wam out of rails and rubber blankets, where we


quietly resided until Monday morning. The
owner of the point, Mr. Trombly, invited us to
dinner on Sunday, and exhibited samples of a
ton of maple sugar which he had made from the
sap of one thousand trees.
On Monday, July 2oth, we rowed southward.
Our route now skirted the western shore of
Lake Champlain, which is the eastern boundary
of the great Adirondack wilderness. Several of
the tributaries of the lake take their rise in this

region, which is being more and more visited


by the hunter, the fisherman, the artist, and the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 33

tourist, as its natural attractions are becoming


known to the public. The geodetical survey
of the northern wilderness of New York state,
known the Adirondack country, under the
as
efficient and energetic labors of Mr. Verplanck

Colvin, will cover an area of nearly five thou-


sand square miles. In his report of the great
work he eloquently says:
"The Adirondack wilderness may be consid-
ered the wonder and the glory of New
York.
It is a vast natural park, one immense and

silent forest, curiously and beautifully broken

by the gleaming waters of a myriad of lakes,


between which rugged mountain-ranges rise as
a sea of granite billows. At the northeast the
mountains culminate within an area of sorne
hundreds of square miles; and here savage, tree-
less peaks, towering above the timber line, crowd
one another, and, standing gloomily shoulder to
shoulder, rear their rocky crests amid the frosty
clouds. The wild beasts may look forth from
the ledges on the mountain-sides over unbroken
woodlands stretching beyond the reach of sight
beyond the blue, hazy ridges at the horizon.
The voyager by the canoe beholds lakes in
which these mountains and wild forests are
reflected like inverted reality; how wondrous
in their dark grandeur and solemnity, now
glorious in resplendent autumn color of pearly
beauty. Here thrilling sound to huntsman
3
34 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

echoes the wild melody of the hound, awaken-


ing the solitude with deep-mouthed bay as he
pursues the swift career of deer. The quavering
note of the loon on the lake, the mournful hoot
of the owl at night, with rarer forest voices,
have also to the lover of nature their peculiar
charm, and form the wild language of this forest.
"It is this region of lakes and mountains
whose mountain core is well shown by the illus-
? '
tration, the heart of the Adirondacks that
our citizens desire to reserve forever as a public
forest park, not only as a resort of" rest for them-
selves and for posterity, but for weighty reasons of

economy.
political For reservoirs of water for the
canals and rivers; for the amelioration of spring
floods by the preservation of the forests shelter-
ing the deep winter snows; for the salvation of
the timber, our only cheap source of lumber
supply should the Canadian and western markets
be ruined by fires, or otherwise lost to us, its

preservation as a state forest is urgently demand-


ed. To the number of those chilly peaks amid
which our principal rivers take their rise, I have
added by measurement a dozen or more over
four thousand feet in height, which were before
either nameless, or only vaguety known by the
names given them by hunters and trappers.
"
It is well to note that the final
hypsometrical
computations fully affirm my discovery that in
Mount Haystack we have another mountain of
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 35

five thousand feet altitude. It may not be unin-


teresting also to remark that the difference be-
tween the altitudes of Mount Marcy and Mount
Washington of the White Mountains of New
Hampshire is found to be quite eight hundred
feet. Mount Marcy, Mount Maclntyre, and
Mount Haystack are to be remembered as the
three royal summits of the state.
"The four prominent peaks are

"
. ( Mount Tahawus I cleave )
Mount Marcy7
T..-
< > 5,402.65
3
( the clouds," . . . )

Mount Haystack, 5,006.73


Mount Maclntyre, 5,201.80
Mount Skylight, 4,977.76."

If the general reader will pardon a seeming


digression to gratify the curiosity of some of my
boating friends, I will give from the report of
the Adirondack Survey Mr. Colvin's account
of his singular boat, one of the lightest yet
constructed, and weighing only as much as a
hunter's double-barrelled gun.
Mr. Colvin says:
"
I also had constructed a canvas boat, of
my
own invention, for use in the interior of the wil-
derness on such of the mountain lakes as were
inaccessible to and which it would be
boats,
necessary to map. This boat was peculiar; no
more frame being needed than could be readily
cut in thirty minutes in the first thicket. It was
36 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

twelve feet long, with thin sheet brass prows,


riveted on, and so fitted as to receive the keelson,

prow pieces, and ribs (of boughs), when re-


quired; the canoe being made water-proof with
pure rubber gum, dissolved in naphtha, rubbed
into it."

Page 43 of Mr. Colvin's report informs the


reader how well this novel craft served the pur-
pose for was built.
which it

"September was devoted to levelling and


12

topographical work at Ampersand Pond, a solitary


by mountains, and seldom visited.
lake locked in
There was no boat upon its surface, and in order
to complete the hydrographical work we had

now, of necessity, to try my portable canvas boat,


which had hitherto done service as bed or tent.
Cutting green rods for ribs, we unrolled the boat
and tied them in, lashing poles for gunwales at
the sides, and in a short time our canvas canoe,

buoyant as a cork, was floating on the water.


The guides, who had been unable" to believe that
the flimsy bag they carried could be used as a
boat, were in ecstasies. Rude but efficient pad-
dles were hastily hewn from the nearest tree,
and soon we were all gliding in our ten-pound
boat over the waves of Ampersand, which glit-
tered in the morning sunlight. To the guides
the boat was something astonishing; the}' could
not refrain from laughter to find that they were
really afloat in it, and pointed with surprise at
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 37

the waves, which could be seen through the


boat, rippling against its sides. With the aid of
the boat, with prismatic compass and sextant, I
was able to secure an excellent map of the lake;
and we almost succeeded in catching a deer ?

which was driven into the lake by a strange


hound. The- dog lost the trail at the water, and
desiring to put him on the track, we paddled to
him. Hescrambled into the boat with an air of
satisfaction, as if he had always travelled in just
such a thing. Soon we had regained the trail,
and making the mountains echo to his voice,
he again pursued the deer on into the trackless
forest.
"
Continuing our work, we passed down into
the outlet, where, in trying to effect a landing,
we suddenly came face to face with a large pan-
ther, which had evidently been watching us.
He fled at our approach.
"
Our baggage was quickly packed, and the

temporary frame of the canoe having been taken


out and thrown away, we rolled up our boat and
put it in the bottom of a knapsack. The same
. . .

day by noon we reached Cold Brook again, here


navigable. In an hour and a half we had re-
framed the canvas, cut out two paddles from a
dry cedar-tree, had dinner, loaded the boat, and
were off, easily gliding down stream to the Sara-
nac River. Three men, the heaped baggage in
the centre, and the solemn hound, who seemed
38 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

to consider himself part of the company, sitting


upright near the prow, forming in all a burden
of about one third of a ton, was a severe test of
the green boughs of which we had made the frame.
"
Ascending the Saranac River, we struck out
into the broad Saranac Lake, some six miles
in length, and though the winds and the waves
buffeted us, the canvas sides of the boat respond-
ing elastically to each beat of the waves, we got
safely along till near the Sister Islands, when, the
wind blowing very fresh, the white-capped roll-
ers began to pitch into the boat. The exertions
of the guides brought us under the lee shore, and
at evening we disembarked at Martin's."
Geographies, guide-books, and historical works
frequently give the length of Lake Champlain as
one hundred and fifty, or at the least one hundred
and forty miles. These distances are not correct.
The lake proper begins at a point near Ticonde-

roga and ends not far from the boundary line of


the United States and Canada. Champlain is not
less than one hundred nor more than one hundred
and twelve miles long. The Champlain Canal,
which connects the river that flows from White-
hall into the lake with the Hudson River, is sixty-
four miles long, ending at the Erie Canal at
Junction Lock, near Troy. From Junction Lock
to Albany, along the Erie Canal, it is six miles:
or seventy miles from Whitehall to Albany by
canal route. This distance has frequently been
given as fifty-one miles.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 39

From the United States boundary line south-


ward it is a distance of seven miles to Isle la

Motte, which island and a half miles long


is five

by one and three quarters wide, with a light-


house upon its northwest point. From the New
York shore of Monti Bay, across the end of Isle
la Motte to St. Albans, Vermont, is a distance of

thirteen and a half miles. Two miles south of


the island, on the west shore, is Point au Roche
light; and two miles and three quarters south of
it is Rocky Point, the terminus of Long Point.
Next comes Treadwell Bay, three miles across;
then two miles further on is Cumberland Head
and its light-house. West from Cumberland,
three miles across a large bay, is Plattsburgh, at
the mouth of the Saranac River; a town of five
thousand inhabitants. In this vicinity Commo-
dore Macdonough fought the British fleet in 1814.
These which have witnessed
are historic waters,
the scene of many a bloody struggle between
French, English, and Indian adversaries. Off
Cumberland Head, and dividing the lake, is
Grand Isle, twelve miles in length and from
three to four in width.
The Kent is near the mouth of
village of Port
the Ausable River, which flows out of the north-
ern Adirondack country. A few miles from the
lake is the natural wonder, the Ausable Chasm,
which is nearly two miles in length. The river
has worn a channel in the Potsdam sandstone
40 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

formation to a depth, in places, of two hundred


feet. Between high walls of rock the river is
compressed in one place to ten feet in breadth,
and dashes wildly over falls and rapids on its
way to Lake Champlain. It is said to rival the
famous Swiss Gorge du Triant.
Schuyler's Island, upon the shore of which we
passed Tuesday night, is nearly in the latitude of
Burlington, Vermont. The distance from Port
Douglass on the west, to Burlington on the east
side of Champlain, over an open expanse of

water, is nine miles and three quarters. We


breakfasted by starlight, and passed Ligonier's
Point early in the day. One mile and a half east
of it is the group of little islands called Four
Brothers. The -lake grew narrower as we rowed
southward, passing Port Henry Iron
until, after
Works, and the high promontory of Crown Point,
upon which are the ruins of the French Fort
Frederic, built in 1731, it has a width of only
two miles.
At eight o'clock p. M. we dropped anchor un-
der the banks of Ticonderoga, not far from the
outlet of Lake George. It is four miles by road

between the two lakes. The stream which con-


nects them can be ascended from Champlain
about two miles to the Iron Works, the remain-
der of the river being filled with rapids.
A railroad now
(1867) connects lakes George
and Champlain, over which an easy portage can
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 4!

be made. The ruined walls of Fort Ticonde-


roga are near the railroad landing. A little

south of this the lake grows so narrow as to re-


semble a river. At its southern end, twenty-
four miles from Ticonderoga, is situated the
town of Whitehall, where the Champlain and
Hudson River Canal forms a junction with Lake
Champlain. This long river-like termination of
Champlain gave to the Indians the fancy of call-
ing it Tisinondrosa "the tail of the lake;"
which mouths inexperienced with the savage
in

tongue became corrupted into Ticonderoga.


Wednesday broke upon us a glorious day.
Proceeding three miles to Patterson's Landing,
"
into the tail of the lake," I left the
Mayeta to
explore on foot the shores of Lake George,
promising Bodfish to join him at Whitehall when
my work should be finished.
42 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

CHAPTER IV.

FROM LAKES GEORGE AND CHAMPLAIN TO THE


HUDSON RIVER.
THE DISCOVERY OF LAKE GEORGE BY FATHER JCGUES. A PE-
DESTRIAN JOURNEY. THE HERMIT OF THE NARROWS.
CONVENT OF ST. MARY'S OF THE LAKE. THE PAULIST
FATHERS. CANAL-ROUTE FROM LAKE CHAMPLAIN TO AL-
BANY. BODFISH RETURNS TO NEW JERSEY. THE LITTLE
FLEET IN ITS HAVEN OF REST.

the last chapter I gave, from seemingly


INgood authority, the appellation of the narrow
terminal water of the southern end of Lake
Champlain, "the tail of the lake."- Another
authority, in describing Lake George, says:
"
The Indians named the lake, on account of the
f

purity of its waters, Horican, or silvery water;'


they also called it Canderi-oit, or 'the tail of
the lake,' on account of its
connecting with Lake
"
Champlain." Cooper, in his Last of the Mo-
"
hicans," says It occurred to me that
: the
French name of the lake was too complicated,
the American too commonplace, and the Indian
too unpronounceable for either to be used fa-

miliarly in a work of fiction." So he called it


Horican.
Hoitte, of

CANOE MAYETA
From Pldttshnni.'i I,, Alini:n-

Lahf f/itiitifitniii <m</ Champlain. fanal

FoUsiwed by ZT.H.Bishop

IO
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 43

History furnishes us with the following facts


in regard to the discovery of the lake. While
journeying up the St. Lawrence in a fleet of
twelve canoes, on a mission to the friendly Hu-
ron aborigines, Father Isaac Jogues and his two
friends, donnas of the mission, Rene Goupil and
Guillaume Couture, with another Frenchman,
were captured at the western end of Lake of
St. Peter by a band of Iroquois, which was on a

marauding expedition from the Mohawk River


country, near what is now the city of Troy. In
the panic caused by the sudden onslaught of the
Iroquois, the unconverted portion of the thirty-
six Huron allies of the Frenchmen fled into the

woods, while the christianized portion defended


the white men for a while. A
reinforcement of
the enemy soon scattered these also, but not
until the Frenchmen and a few of the Hurons
were made captive. This was on the 2d of
August, 1642.
According Parkman, the author of
to Francis
"The Jesuits in North America," the savages
tortured Jogues and his white companions, strip-

ping off their clothing, tearing out their finger-


nails with their teeth, and gnawing their fingers
with the fury of beasts. The seventy Iroquois
returned southward, following the River Riche-
lieu, Lake Champlain, and Lake George, en
route for the Mohawk towns. Meeting a war
party of two hundred of their own nation on
44 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

one of the islands of Champlain, the Indians


formed two parallel lines between which the
captives were forced to run for their lives, while
the savages struck at them with thorny sticks
and clubs. Father Jogues fell exhausted to the
ground, bathed in his own blood, when fire was
applied to his body. At night the young war-
riors tormented the poor captives by opening
their wounds and tearing out their hair and
beards. The day following this night of torture
the Indians and their mangled captives reached
the promontory of Ticonderoga, along the base
of which flowed the limpid waters, the outlet of
Lake George. Here the party made a portage
through the primeval forests, carrying their ca-
noes and cargoes on their backs, when suddenly
there broke upon their view the dark blue waters
of a beautiful lake, which Mr. Parkman thus elo-
quently describes:
"
Like a fair naiad of the wilderness it slum-
bered between the guardian mountains that
breathe from crag and forest the stern poetry of
war. But all then was solitude; and the clang
of trumpets, the roar of cannon, and the deadly
crack of the rifle had never as yet awakened
their angry echoes. Again the canoes were
launched and the wild flotilla glided on its way,
now in the shadow of the heights, now on the
broad expanse, now among the devious chan-
nels of the Narrows, beset with woody islets
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 45

where the hot air was redolent of the pine, the


spruce, and the cedar, till
they neared that
tragic shore where, in the following century,
New England rustics baffled the soldiers of
Dieskau, where Montcalm planted his batteries,
where the red cross waved so long amid the
smoke, and where, at length, the summer night
was hideous with carnage, and an honored name
was stained with a memory of blood. The
Indians landed at or near the future site of Fort
William Henry, left their canoes, and with their
prisoners began their march for the nearest Mo-
hawk town."
Father Jogues lived among his captors until
the fall of 1643, when he escaped in a vessel
from the Dutch settlement of Rensselaerswyck
(Albany), to which place the Iroquois had gone
to trade with the inhabitants. He arrived at the

Jesuit college of Rennes, France, most des-


in a
titute condition, on the 5th of January, 1644,
where he was joyfully received and kindly cared
for. When he appeared before Queen Anne of
Austria, the woman who wore a diadem thought
it a
privilege to kiss his mutilated hands. In the
Roman Catholic church a deformed or mutilated
priest cannot say mass; he must be a perfect
man in body and mind before the Lord. Father
Jogues wished to return to his old missionary
field; so, to restore to him his lost right of saying
mass, the Pope granted his prayer by a special
46 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

dispensation. In the spring of 1643 he returned


to the St. Lawrence country to found a new mis-

sion, tobe called the Mission of Martyrs. His


Superior at Montreal ordered him to proceed to
the country of the Mohawks, and in company
with Sieur Bourdon, a government engineer, and
six Indians, he followed the Richelieu and Cham-
"
plain, which the savages called the doorway
of the country," until the little party stood on
the northern end of Lake George, on the even-

ing of Corpus Christi; and with the catholic


spirit of the Jesuit missionary he christened it
Lac St. Sacrement, and this name it bore for a
whole century. On the iSth of October, 1646,
the tomahawk of the savage ended the life
of Father Jogues, who, after suffering many tor-
tures and indignities from his Iroquois captors,
died in their midst while working for their salva-
tion in his field of Christian labor.
The right of a discoverer to name new lakes
and rivers is old and unquestioned. A mission-
ary of the cross penetrated an unexplored wil-
derness and found this noblest gem of the lower
Adirondacks, unknown to civilized man. Im-
pressed with this sublime work of his Creator,
the martyred priest christened it St. Sacrement.
One hundred years later came troops of soldiers
with mouths filled with strange oaths, cursing
their enemies. What respect had they for the
rights of discoverers or martyred missionaries?
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 47
"
So General Johnson, an ambitious Irishman,"
discarded the Christian name of the lake and
replaced it with the English one of George.
He did not name it after St. George, the patron
saint of England, of whom history asserts that
"
he wasidentical with a native of either Cappa-
docia or Cilicia, who raised himself by flattery
of the great from the meanest circumstances to
be purveyor of bacon for the army, and who was
put to death with two of his ministers by a mob,
361;" but he took that of
for peculations, A. D.
a sensual king, George of England, in order to
advance his own interests with that monarch.
For more than a century Lake George was the
highway between Canada and the Hudson River.
Its pure waters were so much esteemed as to be

taken regularly to Canada to be consecrated and


used in the Roman
Catholic churches in baptis-
mal and other sacred rites. The lake was fre-
quently occupied by armies, and the forts George
and William Henry, at the southern end, possess
most interesting historical associations. The
novelist Cooper made Lake George a region of
romance. To the young generation of Ameri-
cans who yearly visit its shores it is an El
Dorado, and the very air breathes love as they
glide in their light boats over its pellucid waters,
adding to the picturesqueness of the scene, and
supplying that need ever felt, no matter what
the natural beauty, the presence of man. I
48 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

believe even the Garden of Eden itself could


not have been perfect till among its
shady
groves fell the shadows of our
parents. first

The cool retreats, the jutting promontories, the


moss-covered rocks against which the waves
softly break, if these had tongues, they would,
"
like Tennyson's Brook, go on forever," for
surely they would never have done telling the
tender tales they have heard. Nor would it be
possible to find a more fitting spot for the cul-
tivation of love and sentiment than this charming
lake affords; for Nature seems to have created
Lake George in one of her happiest moments.
This lake about thirty-four miles long, and
is

varies in width from one to four miles. Its

greatest depth is about the same as that of


Champlain. It possesses (like all the American
lakes when used as fashionable watering-places)
the usual three hundred and sixty-five islands.
When I left the Mayeta I followed a narrow
footpath to a rough mountain road, which in
turn led me through the forests towards Lake

George. In an isolated dell I found the home


of one Levi Smith, who piloted me through the
woods to the lake, and ferried me in a skiff
across to Hague, when I dined at the hotel, and
resumed my journey along the shores to Sabbath
Day where at four o'clock p. M. a steamer
Point,
on from Ticonderoga to the south end of
its trip

the lake stopped and took me on board. We


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 49

steamed southward to where high mountains


shut in the lake, and for several miles threaded
the
"
Narrows " with its many pretty islands,
upon one of which Mr. J. Henry Hill, the her-
mit-artist, had erected his modest home, and
where he toiled at his studies early and late,
summer and winter. Three goats and a squirrel
were his only companions in this lonely but
romantic spot.
During one cold winter, when the lake was
frozen over to a depth of two feet, and the for-
ests were mantled in snow, Mr. Hill's brother,
a civil engineer, made a visit to this icy region,
and the two brothers surveyed the Narrows,
making a correct map of that portion of the lake,
with all its islands carefully located. Mr. Hill
afterwards made an etching of this map, sur-
rounding it with an artistic border representing

objects of interest in the locality.


Late in the afternoon the steamer landed me
at Crosbyside, on the east shore, about a mile
from the head of the lake, resting beneath the
shady groves of which I beheld one of the most
charming views of Lake George. Early the fol-
lowing morning I took up my abode with a
farmer, one William Lockhart, a genial and
eccentric gentleman, and a relation of Sir Wal-
ter Scott's son-in-law Mr. Lockhart's little
T
.

cottage is half a mile north of Crosbyside, and


near the high bluff which Mr. Charles O'Conor,
4
50 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the distinguished lawyer of New York city, pre-


sented to the Paulist Fathers, whose establish-
ment is on Fifty-ninth Street in that metropolis.
Here the members of the new Order come to
pass their summer vacations, bringing with them
their theological students. The Paulists are hard
workers, visiting and holding "missions" in Min-
nesota, California, and other parts of the United
States. They seem to feel forcibly the truth

expressed in these lines, which are to be found


in "Aspirations of Nature," a work written by
the founder of their order, Father Hecker: "Ex-
istence is not a dream, but a solemn reality.
Life was not given to be thrown aw ay on mis-r

erable sophisms, but to be employed in earnest


search after truth."
Mr. Lockhart kindly offered to escort me to the
convent of St. Mary's of the Lake; and after
following the mountain road for a quarter of a
mile to the north of the cottage of my companion,
we entered the shady grounds of the convent and
were kindly received on the long piazza by the
Father Superior, Rev. A. F. Hewit, who intro-
duced me to several of his co-laborers, a party
of them having just returned from an excursion
to the Harbor Islands at the northern end of the

Narrows, which property is owned by the Order.


I was told that the members of this new
religious
establishment numbered about thirty, and that all
but four were converts from our Protestant faith.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 51

Their property in New York city is probably


worth half a million of dollars, and the Sunday
schools under their charge contain about fif-
teen hundred scholars. Here, among others,
I saw Father D who gave up his distin-
,

guished position as instructor of the art of war


at the Military Academy of West
Point, to be-
come a soldier of the Cross, preferring to serve
his Master by preaching the gospel of peace
to mankind. Under an overhanging rock at a
littledistance were conversing, most happily,
two young priests, who a few years before had
fought on opposite sides during the civil strife
which resulted in the preservation of the Great
Republic.
A
mathematician and astronomer from the
Cambridge and also from a government observa-
tory, who had donned cassock, gave me
the
much valuable information in regard to the moun-
tain peaks of Lake George,* which he had care-
* New York
Heights of mountains of Lake George, state, ob-
tained by Rev. George M. Searle, C. S. P.
Finch, between Buck and Spruce, 1595 feet.

Cat-Head, near Bolton, 1640 feet.


Prospect Mountain, west of Lake George village, 1730 feet.

Spruce, near Buck Mountain, 1820 feet.


Buck, east shore, south of Narrows, 2005 feet.
Bear, between Buck and Black, 2200 feet.
Black, the monarch of Lake George, 2320 feet.
From another authority I find that Lake Champlain is ninety-

three feet above the Atlantic tide-level, and that Lake George is
two hundred and forty feet above Lake Champlain, or three hun-
dred and thirty-three feet above the sea.
52 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

fully studied and accurately measured. Through


his courtesy and generosity I am enabled to give
on the preceding page the results of his labors.
The
interesting conversation was here inter-
rupted by the tolling of the convent bell. A
deep silence prevailed, as, with uncovered heads
and upon bended knees, the whole company most
devoutly crossed themselves while repeating
a prayer. I felt much drawn towards a young
priest with delicate and refined features, who
now engaged me in conversation. He was an
adept in all that related to boats. He loved the
beautiful lake, and was never happier than when
upon its mirrored surface, except when laboring
at his duties among the poor of the ninth dis-
trict of New
York. The son of a distinguished
general, he inherited rare talents, which were

placed at his Saviour's service. His Christianity


was so liberal, his aspirations so noble, his sym-

pathies so strong, that I became much interested


in him; and when I left the lake, shortly after,
he quietly said, "When you return next summer
to build your cottage, let me help you plan the
boat-house." But when I returned to the shores
of Lake George, after the completion of my voy-
age to the Gulf of Mexico, no helping hand was
there, and I built my boat-house unassisted; for
the gentle spirit of the missionary Paulist had
gone to God who gave it, and Father Rosencranz
was receiving his reward.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 53

When I
joined my travelling companion, David
Bodfish, he grievously inveighed against the com-
munity of Whitehall because some dishonest
boatmen from the canal had appropriated the
stock of pipes and tobacco he had laid in for his
"
three or four days' voyage to Albany. Sixty
cents' worth of new pipes and tobacco," said Da-
"
vid, in injured tones, is a
great loss, and a Bod-
fish never was worth anything at work without
his tobacco. used to pour speerits down to keep
I

my speerits up, but of late years I have depended


on tobacco, as the speerits one gets nowadays
isn't the same kind we got when I was a boy and
worked in old Hawkin Swamp."
Canal voyaging, after one has experienced the
sweet influences of lakes George and Cham-
plain, is indeed monotonous. But to follow con-
watercourses it was
necting necessary for the
Mayeta to traverse the Champlain Canal (sixty-
four) and the Erie Canal (six miles) from White-
hall to Albany on the Hudson River, a total
distance of seventy miles.
There was nothing of sufficient interest in the

passage of the canal to be worthy of record save


the giving way of a lock-gate, near Troy, and
the precipitating of a canal-boat into the vortex
of waters that followed. By this accident my
boat was detained one day on the banks of the
canal. On the fourth day the Mayeta ended her
services by arriving at Albany, where, after a
54 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

journey of four hundred miles, experience had


taught me that I could travel more quickly in a
lighter boat,and more conveniently and econom-
ically without a companion. It was now about

the first week in August, and the delay which


would attend the building of new boat espe-
a

cially adapted for the


journey of two thousand
miles yet to be travelled would not be lost, as by
waiting a few weeks, time would be given for
the malaria on the rivers of New Jersey, Dela-
ware, and Maryland, and even farther south, to
be eradicated by the fall frosts. David returned
to his New Jersey home
a happy man, invested
with the importance which attaches itself to a
great traveller. I had unfortunately contributed

to Mr. Bodfish's thirst for the marvellous by /

reading to him at night, in our lonely camp,


Jules Verne's imaginative "Journey to the Cen-
tre of the Earth." David was in ecstasies over
this wonderful contribution to fiction. He pre-
ferred fiction to truth at any time. Once, while
reading to him a chapter of the above work, his
credulity was
so challenged that he became ex-
"
cited, and broke forth with, Say, boss, how do
these big book-men larn to lie so well? does it
come nat'ral to them, or is it got by edication?"
I have since heard that when Mr. Bodfish arrived
in the pine-wood regions of New Jersey he re-
lated to his friends his adventures " in furrin

parts," as he styled the Dominion of Canada,


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 55

and so interlaced the facts of the cruise of the


Mayeta with the fancies of the "Journey to the
Centre of the Earth," that to his neighbors the
region of the St. Lawrence has become a coun-
try of awful and mysterious associations, while
the more knowing members of the community
which David honors with his presence are firmly
convinced that there never existed such a boat
as the Mayeta save in the wild imagination of
David Bodfish.
Mr. Bodtish's fictitious adventures, as related
by him, covered many thousand miles of canoe
voyaging. He had penetrated the region of ice
beyond Labrador, and had viewed with com-
placency the north pole, which he found to be
a pitch-pine spar that had been erected by
the CoastSurvey "to measure pints from."
He roundly censured the crews of whale-ships
which had mutilated this noble government
work by splitting much of it into kindling-wood.

Fortunately about two-thirds of Mr. Bodrish's


audience had no very clear conceptions of the
character of the north pole, some of them having
ignored itsvery existence. So they accepted
this portion of his narrative, while they rejected
the most reasonable part of his story.
The Mayeta was sent to Lake George, and
afterwards permanent resident. Two
became a

years later her successor, the Paper Canoe, one


of the most happy efforts of the Messrs. Waters,
56 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

of Troy, was quietly moored beside her; and


soon after there was added to the little fleet a
cedar duck-boat, which had carried me on a
second voyage to the great southern sea. Here,
anchored safely under the high cliffs, rocked
gently by the loving waters of Lake George, rest
these faithful friends. They carried me over
fivethousand miles, through peaceful rivers and
surging seas. They have shared my dangers;
they now share my peace.

ANCHORED AT j^AST.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 57

CHAPTER V.

THE AMERICAN PAPER BOAT AND ENGLISH


CANOES.
THE PECULIAR CHARACTER OF THE PAPER BOAT. THE HISTORY
OF THE ADOPTION OF PAPER FOR BOATS. A BOY'S INGENU-
ITY. THE PROCESS OF BUILDING PAPER BOATS DESCRIBED.
COLLEGE CLUBS ADOPTING THEM. THE GREAT VICTORIES WON
BY PAPER OVER WOODEN SHELLS IN 1876.

regarding the history and dura-


INQUIRIES
bility of paper boats occasionally reach me
through the mediumof the post-office. After
all the uses to which paper has been put during
the last twenty years, the public is yet hardly
convinced that the flimsy material, paper, can
successfully take the place of wood in the con-
struction of light pleasure-boats, canoes, and
racing shells. Yet the idea has become an ac-
complished fact. The success of the victorious
paper shells of the Cornell College navy, which
were enlisted in the struggles of two seasons at

Saratoga, against no mean antagonists, the col-

lege crews of the United States, surely proves


that in strength, stiffness, speed, and fineness of

model, the paper boat is without a rival.


When used in its own peculiar sphere, the
58 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

improved paper boat will be found to possess the

following merits: less weight, greater strength,


stiffness, durability, and speed than a wooden
boat of the same size and model; and the moulded
paper shell will retain the delicate lines so essen-
speed, while the brittle wooden shell yields
tial to

more or less to the warping influences of sun and


moisture. A
comparison of the strength of wood
and paper for boats has been made by a writer in
the Cornell Times, a journal published by the
students of that celebrated New
York college :

"
Let us take a piece of wood and a piece of
paper of the same thickness, and experiment
with, use, and abuse them both to the same ex-
tent. Let the wood be of one-eighth of an inch
in thickness the usual thickness of shell-boats,
and the paper heavy pasteboard, both one foot
square. Holding them up by one side, strike
them with a hammer, and observe the result.
The wood will be cracked, to say the least ;
the pasteboard, whirled out of your hand, will
only be dented, at most. Take hold and bend
them: the wood bends to a certain degree, and
then splits; the pasteboard, bent to the same de-
gree, is not affected in the least. Take a knife
and strike them: the wood is again split, the

pasteboard only pierced. Place them on the


water: the wood floats for an indefinite time; the
pasteboard, after a time, soaks, and finally sinks,
as was to be expected. But suppose we soak the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 59

pasteboard in marine glue before the experiment,


then we find the pasteboard equally as imper-
vious to the water as wood, and as buoyant, if of
the same weight; but, to be of the same weight,
it must be thinner than the wood, yet even then
it stands the before-mentioned tests as well as
when thicker; and it will be found to stand all

tests much better than wood, even when it

weighs considerably less.


"
Now, enlarging our pieces, and moulding
them into boats of thesame weight, we find the
following differences: Wood, being stiff and
liable to split, can only be moulded into com-

parative form. it can be rendered


Paper, since
perfectly pliable, can be pressed into any shape
desirable; hence, any wished-for fineness of lines
can be given the model, and the paper will
to
assume the identical shape, after which it can be
water-proofed, hardened, and polished. Paper
neither swells, nor shrinks, nor cracks, hence it
does not leak, is always ready for use, always
serviceable. As to cost, there is very little dif-

ference between the two; the cost being within


twenty-five dollars, more or less, the same for
both. Those who use paper boats think them
very near perfection and surely those who have
;

the most to do with boats ought to know, preju-


dice aside, which is the best."
An paper boat is easily repaired by
injury to a
a patch of strong paper and a coating of shellac
6o VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

put on with a hot iron. As the paper boat is


a novelty with many people, a sketch of its early
history may prove interesting to the reader. Mr.
George A. Waters, the son of the senior member
of the firm of E. Waters & Sons, of Troy, New
York, was invited some years since to a masquer-
ade party. The boy repaired to a toy shop to
purchase a counterfeit face; but, thinking the
price (eight dollars) was more than he could
afford for a single evening's sport, he borrowed
the mask for a model, from which he produced a
duplicate as perfect as was the original. While
engaged upon work, an idea impressed
his novel
"
itself upon his ingenious brain. Cannot," he
queried, "a paper shell be made upon the wooden
model of a boat? And will not a shell thus pro-
duced, after being treated to a coat of varnish,
float as well, and be lighter than a wooden boat?
"

This was in March, 1867, while the youth was


engaged in the manufacture of paper boxes.

Having repaired a wooden by cover-


shell-boat

ing the cracks with sheets of stout paper cemented


to the wood, the result satisfied him; and he im-

mediately applied his attention to the further


development of his bright idea. Assisted by his
father, Mr. Elisha Waters, the enterprise was
"
commenced by taking a wooden shell, thirteen
inches wide and thirty feet long, as a mould,
and covering the entire surface of its bottom and
sides with small sheets of strong Manila paper,
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 61

glued together, and superposed on each other, so


that the joints of one layer were covered by the
middle of the sheet immediately above, until a
sheet of paper had been formed one-sixteenth of
an inch in thickness. The fabric thus con-
structed, being carefully dried, was re-
after
moved from the mould and fitted up with a
suitable frame, consisting of a lower keelson, two

inwales, the bulkhead; in short, all the usual


parts of the frame of a wooden shell, except the
timbers, or ribs, of which none were used the
extreme stiffness of the skin rendering them un-
necessary. Its surface was then carefully water-
proofed with suitable varnishes, and the work was
completed. Trials proved that, rude as was this
first attempt compared with the elegant craft
now turned out from paper, it had marked merits,
among which remarkable stiffness, the
were, its

symmetry of the hull with respect to its long


axis, and the smoothness of the water-surface."
A gentleman, who possesses excellent judg-
ment and long experience in all that relates to

paper boats, furnishes me with the following


valuable information, which I feel sure will inter-
est the reader.
"
The process of building the paper shell-boat
is as follows: The dimensions of the boat having
been determined upon, the first step is to con-
struct a wooden model, or form, an exact fac-
simile of the desired boat, on which to mould
62 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the paper skin. For this purpose the lines of the


boat are carefully drawn out of the full size, and
from the drawings thus made the model is pre-
pared. It is built of layers of well-seasoned
pine, securely fastened together to form one solid
mass; which, after having been laid up of the
general outline required, is
carefully worked off,
until its surface, which is made perfectly smooth,
exactly conforms to the selected lines, and its
beam, depth, and length are those of the given
boat. During the process of construction, its

suitable rabbets are cut to receive the lower keel-

son, the two inwales, and the bow and stern


deadwoods, which, being put in position, are
worked off so that their surfaces are flush with
that of the model, and forming, as it were, an

integral part of being important that these


it. It

parts should, in the completed boat, be firmly


attached to the skin, their surface is, at this part
of the process, covered with a suitable adhesive
preparation.
;r
The model is now
be covered with
ready to

paper. Two kinds are used:


made from the that
best Manila, and that prepared from pure un-
bleached linen stock; the sheets being the full
length of the model, no matter what that may
be. Manila paper is used, the first sheet is
If

dampened, laid smoothly on the model, and


securely fastened in place by tacking it to cer-
tain rough strips attached to its upper face.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 63

Other sheets are now superposed on this and on


each other, and suitably cemented together; the
number depending upon the size of the boat and
the stiffness required. If linen paper is used, but
one sheet is employed, of such weight and di-
mensions that, when dry, it will give just the
thickness of skin necessary. Should the surface
of the model be concave in parts, as in the run
of boats with square sterns for instance, the paper
is made to conform to these surfaces
by suitable
convex moulds, which also hold the paper in
place until, by drying, it has taken and will re-
tain the desired form. The model, with its
enveloping coat of paper, is now removed to the

dry-room. As the paper skin dries, all wrinkles


disappear, and it
gradually assumes the desired
shape. Finally, when all moisture has been
evaporated, it is taken from the mould an exact
fac-simile of the model
desired, exceedingly stiff,
perfectly symmetrical, and seamless.
"The paper is now subjected to the water-proof
process, and the skin, with its keelson, inwales,
and dead-woods attached, is then placed in the
carpenter's hands, where the frame is completed
in the usual manner, as described for wooden
boats. The paper decks being put on, it is then
ready for the brass, iron, and varnish work. As
the skins of these boats (racing-shells) vary from
one-sixteenth of an inch in the singles, to one-
twelfth of an inch in the six-oared outriggers, the
64 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

wooden frame becomes necessary to support and


keep them in shape. In applying this invention
to gigs, dingys, canoes, and skiffs, a somewhat
different method is adopted. Since these boats
are subjected to much hard service, and must be
so constructed as to permit the occupant to move
about in them as is usual in such craft, a light
and strong frame of wood is prepared, composed
of a suitable number of pairs of ribs, with stem
and stern pieces cut from the natural crooks of
hackmatack roots. These are firmly framed to
two gunwales and a keelson, extending the
length of the boat; the whole forming the skele-
ton shape of the desired model. The forms for
these boats having been prepared, as already
described for the racing-shells, and the frame
being let into this form, so that the outer surface
of the ribs, stem and stern pieces will conform
with its outer surface, the paper skin is next laid
upon it. The skin, manufactured from new, un-
bleached linen stock, is carefully stretched in
place, and when perfectly dry is from one-tenth
to three-sixteenths of an inch thick. Removed
from the model, it is water-proofed, the frame
and completed, and the boat varnished.
fittings
In short, in -this class of boats, the shape, style,
and finish are precisely that of wooden ones, of
corresponding dimensions and class, except that
for the usual wooden sheathing is substituted the

paper skin as described.


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 65
r
The advantages possessed by these boats over
those of wood are:
"
By the use of this material for the skins of
where experience has demonstrated
racing-shells,
the smooth bottom to be the best, under-water
lines ofany degree of fineness can be developed,
which cannot successfully be produced in those
of wood, even where the streaks are so reduced
in thickness that strength, stiffness, and durabil-

ity are either wholly sacrificed or greatly im-


' '

paired. In the finer varieties of dug-outs


equally fine lines can be obtained; but so delicate
are such boats, if the sides are reduced to three-
sixteenths of an inch or less in thickness, that it

is found practically impossible to preserve their


original forms for any length of time. Hence,
so far as this point is concerned, it only remains
for the builder to select those models which

science, guided by experience, points out as the


best.
"
The paper skin, after being water-proofed, is
finished with hard varnishes, and then presents a
solid, perfectly smooth, and horny surface to the
action of the water, unbroken by joint, lap, or
seam. This surface admits of being polished as
smooth as a coach-panel or a mirror. Unlike
wood, it has no grain to be cracked or split, it

never shrinks, and, paper being one of the best


of non-conductors, no ordinary degree of heat
or cold affects its shape or hardness, and hence
5
66 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

these boats are admirably adapted for use in all


climates. As the skin absorbs no moisture,
these boats gain no 'weight by use, and, having
no moisture to give off when out of the water,
they do not, like wooden boats, show the effect
of exposure to the air by leaking. They are,
therefore, in this respect always prepared for
service.
*
The
strength and stiffness of the paper shells
are most remarkable. To demonstrate it, a sin-
gle shell of twelve inch beam and twenty-eight
feet long, fitted complete with its
outriggers,
the weighing twenty-two pounds, was
hull

placed on two trestles eight feet apart, in such a


manner that the trestles were each the same
distance from the centre of the cockpit, which
was thus entirely unsupported. A man weigh-
ing one hundred and forty pounds then seated
himself in it, and remained in this position three
minutes. The deflection caused
by this strain,
being accurately measured, was found to be one-
sixteenth of an inch at a point midway between
the supports. If this load, applied under such
abnormal conditions, produced so little effect, we
can safely assume that, w hen thus loaded and
r

resting on the water, supported throughout her


whole length, and the load far more equally dis-
tributed over the whole frame, there would be
no deflection whatever.
"
Lightness, when combined with a proper, stiff-
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 67

ness and strength, being a very desirable quality,


it is here that the paper boats far excel their wood-

en rivals. If two one of


shells are selected, the
wood and the other with a paper skin and deck,
as has been described, of the same dimensions
and equally stiff, careful experiment proves that
the wooden one will be thirty per cent, the
heaviest. If those of the same dimensions and
equal 'weight are compared, the paper one will
be found to exceed the wooden one in stiffness
and in capacity to resist torsional strains in the
same proportion. Frequent boasts are made that
wooden shells can be and are built much lighter
than paper ones; and if the quality of lightness
alone considered, this is true; yet when the
is

practical test of use is applied, such extremely


light wooden boats have always proved, and will
continue to prove, failures, as here this quality
isonly one of a number which combine to make
the boat serviceable. A wooden shell whose
hull weighs twenty-two pounds, honest weight,
is a very fragile, short-lived affair. A paper
shell of the same dimensions, and of the same
weight, will last as long, and do as much work,
as a wooden one whose hull turns the beam at

thirty pounds.
"An instance of their remarkable strength is
shown in the following case. In the summer of
1870, a single shell, while being rowed at full
speed, with the current, on one of our princi-
68 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

pal rivers, was run into the stone abutment of a


bridge. The bow struck squarely on the obsta-
cle, and such was the momentum of the mass that
the oarsman was thrown directly through the
flaring bow of the cockpit into the river. Wit-
nesses of the accident who were familiar with
wooden shells declared that the boat was ruined;
but, after a careful examination,only the bow-tip
was found to be twisted in a spiral form, and the
washboard broken at the point by the oarsman
as he passed between the sides. Two dollars
covered the cost of repair. Had it been a
wooden shell the shock would have crushed its
stem and splintered the skin from the bow to the
waist."
Old and cautious seamen tried to dissuade me
from contracting with the Messrs. Waters for the
building of a stout paper canoe for my journey.
Harvard College had not adopted this " new-
"
fangled notion at that time, and Cornell had

only begun to think of attempting to out-row


other colleges at Saratoga by using paper boats.
The Centennial year of the independence of the
United States, 1876, settled all doubts as to the
value of the result of the years of toil of the in-
ventors of the paper boat. During the same
year the incendiary completed his revengeful
work by burning the paper-boat manufactory
at Troy. The loss was a heavy one; but a few
weeks later these unflinching men were able to
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 69

record the following victories achieved that sin-


gle season by their boats.
The races won by the paper boats were:

The Intercollegiate Championship :

Freshmen and University.


The International Championship at Saratoga :

Singles, Doubles, and Fours.


The National Championship, N. A. of A. O. :

Singles, Doubles, and Fours.


The World's Championship at Centennial Exhibition :

Singles, Doubles, and Fours.


The Professional Championship of the United States.

And every other important race of the season,


besides receiving the highest honors at the Cen-
tennial Exhibition. The
right to make boats of
paper in Canada and in the United States is ex-
clusively held by the Messrs. Waters, and they
are the only manufacturers of paper boats in
the world.
It is not many years since Mr. Macgregor, of
London, built the little Rob Roy
canoe, and in it
made the tour of interesting European waters.
His example was followed by an army of tourists,
and it is now a common thing to meet canoe
voyagers in miniature flotillas upon the water-
courses of our own and foreign lands. Mr. W.
Baden-Powell, an Englishman, perfected
also
the model of the Nautilus type of canoe, which

possesses a great deal of sheer with fullness of


bow, and is therefore a better boat for rough
70 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

water than the The New York Canoe


Rob Roy.
Club, in
1874, had the Nautilus for their model.
We still need a distinctive American type for our
waters, more like the best Indian canoe than the
European models here presented. These mod-
ern yacht-like canoes are really improved kyaks,
and in their construction we are much indebted
to the experience of the inhabitants of the Arctic
Circle. Very few of the so-called Rob Roy ca-
noes, built in the United States, resemble the
original perfected boat of Mr. Macgregor the
father of modern canoe travelling. The illus-
trations given of English canoes are from import-
ed models, and are perfect of their type.

NOTE TO PAGE 72. The author has been criticised by technical


canoeists for using oars on a canoe. On this cruise, experience proved
that the paddle could be used effectively only two miles out of every
three. Head winds and seas frequently drive the paddler into camp,
while the adaptive cruiser pushes on with oar and outrigger, and avoids
the loss of many hours. Many canoeists exploring our broad water-
courses have adopted the oar as an auxiliary, the paddle properly
taking the precedence. We
are progressing. The canoeist of 1882 may
follow the teachings of common-sense vs. unauthorized technical crit-
icisms. Oars on a light paddling canoe are out of place; but are a
most effective power on a heavy cruising canoe, insuring a successful
voyage.
MA Ft I A THERESA
From AIIKIH v tt> \e\\- Yi>rk Citv

li'ii Hml.-Hni /io-rt'

>
/'t >lli >wi->.
/;>- \.il.liishop

-
i,-
,-."' .- 't, -i -.:,,,,

r ,,,.,.,,

.V.-i
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 71

CHAPTER VI.

TROY TO PHILADELPHIA.

PAPER CANOE MARIA THERESA. THE START. THE DESCENT


OF THE HUDSON RIVER. CROSSING THE UPPER BAY OF NEW
YORK. PASSAGE OF THE KILLS. RARITAN RIVER. THE
CANAL ROUTE FROM NEW BRUNSWICK TO THE DELAWARE
RIVER. FROM BORDENTOWN TO PHILADELPHIA.

canoe of the English " Nautilus " type


MY was completed by the middle of October;
and on the cold, drizzly morning of the 2ist of
the same month I embarked in my little fifty-

eight pound from the landing of the paper-


craft
boat manufactory on the river Hudson, two miles
above Troy. Mr. George A. Waters put his
own canoe into the water, and proposed to
escort me a few miles down the river. If I
had any misgivings as to the stability of my
paper canoe upon entering her for the first time,
they were quickly dispelled as I passed the
stately Club-house of the Laureates, which con-
tained nearly forty shells, all of paper.
The dimensions of the Maria Theresa were:
length, fourteen feet; beam, twenty-eight inches;
depth, amidships, nine inches; height of bow
from horizontal line, twenty-three inches; height
72 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

of stern, twenty inches. The canoe was one-


eighth of an inch in thickness, and weighed
fifty-eightpounds. She was fitted with a pair
of steel outriggers, which could be easily un-
shipped and stowed away. The oars were of
spruce, seven feet eight inches long, and weighed
three pounds and a quarter each. The double
paddle, which was seven feet six inches in length,
weighed two pounds and a half. The mast
and sail which are of no service on such a
miniature vessel, and were soon discarded
weighed six pounds. When I took on board at
Philadelphia the canvas deck-cover and the rub-
ber strap which secured it in position, and the
outfit, the cushion, sponge, provision-basket,
and a fifteen-pound case of charts, I found that,

with my own weight included (one hundred and


thirty pounds), the boat and her cargo, all told,
provisioned for a long cruise, fell considerably
short of the weight of three Saratoga trunks
containing a very modest wardrobe for a lady's
four weeks' visit at a fashionable watering-place.
Therain ceased, the mists ascended, and the

sunlight broke upon us as we swiftly descended


upon the current of the Hudson to Albany. The
city was reached in an hour and a half. Mr.
Waters, pointing his canoe northward, wished me
bon voyage, and returned to the scene of the tri-
umphs of his patient labors, while I settled down
to a steady row southward. At Albany, the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 73

capital of the state, which is said to be one hun-


dred and fifty miles distant from New York city,
there is a tidal rise and fall of one foot.

A feeling of buoyancy and independence came


over me
as I glided on the current of this noble

stream, with the consciousness that I now pos-


sessed the right boat for my enterprise. It had

been a dream of my youth to become acquainted


with the charms of this most romantic river of
the American continent. Its sources are in the
clouds of the Adirondacks, among the cold peaks
of the northern wilderness; its ending may be
said to be in the briny waters of the Atlantic,
for its channel-way has been sounded outside
of the sandy beaches of New York harbor in
the bosom of the restless ocean. The highest
life are nurtured upon its banks.
types of civilized
Noble edifices, which contain and preserve the
works of genius and of mechanical art, rear their
proud roofs from among these hills on the lofty
sites of the picturesque Hudson. The wealth
of the great city at mouth, the metropolis of
its

the young nation, has been lavished upon the


soil of the river's borders to make it even more
beautiful and more fruitful. What river in
America, along the same length of coast-lines
as from Troy to New York (one hundred and

fifty-six miles), can rival in natural beauty


and artificial applications of wealth the lovely
Hudson? :?
The Hudson River," says its genial
74 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

Mr. Lossing, " from its birth among


historian,
the mountains to its marriage with the ocean,
measures a distance of full three hundred
miles."
Captain John Smith's friend, the Englishman
Henry Hudson, while in the employ of the
Dutch East India Company, in his vessel of

ninety tons, Half-Moon, being in search


the
of a northwest passage south of Virginia, cast
anchor outside of Sandy Hook, September 3,
1609, and on the nth passed up through the
Narrows into the present bay of New York.
Under the firm conviction that he was on his
way to the long-sought Cathay, a day later he
entered the Hudson River, where now stands
the proud metropolis of America. As the Half-
Moon ascended the river the water lost its salt-
ness, and by the time they were anchored where
the city of Albany now stands all hopes of Cathay
faded from the heart of the mariner. Englishmen
called this river in honor of its discoverer, but the
Dutch gave it the name of North River, after
the Delaware had been discovered and named
South River. Thus, while in 1609 Samuel
Champlain was exploring the lake which bears
his name, Hudson was ascending his river upon
the southern water-shed. The historian tells us
that these bold explorers penetrated the wilder-

ness, one from the north and the other from the
south, to within one hundred miles of each other.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 75

The same historian (Dr. Lossing) says: "The


most remote source of the extreme western
branch of our noble river is Hendricks Spring,
so named in honor of Hendricks Hudson. We
found Hendricks Spring in the edge of a swamp,
cold, shallow, about five feet in diameter,
shaded by trees, shrubbery, and vines, and fringed
with the delicate brake and fern. Its waters,
rising within half a mile of Long Lake, and upon
the same summit-level, flow southward to the
Atlantic more than three hundred miles; while
those of the latter flow to the St. Lawrence, and
reach the same Atlantic a thousand miles away
to the far northeast."
Since Dr. Lossing visited the western head of
the Hudson River, the true and highest source
of the stream has probably been by a
settled

gentleman possessing scientific acquirements and


inflexible purpose. On the plateau south of
Mount Marcy, State-Surveyor Colvin found
the little Lake Tear-of-the-Clouds to be the
sheet of water in the state,
loftiest four thou-
sand three hundred and twenty-six feet above
the sea, and proved it to be the lake-head of
the great river Hudson. A
second little pond in
a marsh on a high plateau, at the foot of Mount
was also discovered,
Redfield, "margined and
embanked with luxuriant and deep sphagnous
moss," which was named by the party Moss
Lake. It was found to flow into the Hudson.
76 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

A beautiful bivalve shell, three-sixteenths


little

of an inch in diameter, of an undescribed species,


was found in the pellucid water, and thus a new
shell was handed over to conchology, and a new
river source to geography, in the same hour.
This pool is four thousand three hundred and
twelve feet above tide-water, and only a few feet
lower than its sister, Tear-of-the-Clouds the
highest source of the Hudson.
Should the state of New York adopt Mr. Col-
vin's suggestion, to reserve six hundred square
miles of the Adirondacjc region for a public park,
the pool Tear-of-the-Clouds will be within the
reservation. The waters of these baby foun-
tains are by contributions from the
swollen
streams, ponds, and lakes of the Adirondack
wilderness, until along the banks of Fishing
Brook, a tributary of the Hudson, the water is
utilized at the first saw-mill. A few miles lower
down are vexed by the axe of the
the forests
lumbermen, and logs are floated down the river
one hundred miles to Glens Falls, where the
State Dam and Great Boom are located. Half
a million logs have been gathered there in a sin-

gle spring.
was upon the Hudson that the first suc-
It

cessful steamboat, built by Robert Fulton, made


its voyage to Albany, the engine having been
built by Watt & Bolton, in England.
From Mr. Lossing we obtain the following.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 77
rf
The Clermont was one hundred feet long,
twelve feet wide, and seven feet deep. The
following advertisement appeared in the Albany
Gazette on the ist of September, 1807:

" The North River steamboat will leave Paulus Hook (Jersey

City) on Friday, the 4th of September, at 9 in the morning, and


arrive at Albany on Saturday at 9 in the afternoon. Provisions,
good berths, and accommodations are provided. The charge to
each passenger is as follows :

To Newburgh, . . .
.,3 Dollars. . .
Time, 14 hours.
"
Poughkeepsie, ... 4 "...." 17
"
"
Esopus, '5 "...." 20 "
"
Hudson, "...." 30
"
Albany,
5i
7 "..." 36
"
."

The trip, which was made against a strong


head wind, was entirely successful. The large
steamers can now make the trip from New York
to Albany in about twelve hours.

As pulled easily along the banks of the river,


I

my eyes feasted upon the gorgeous coloring of


the autumnal foliage, which formed a scene of
beauty never to be forgotten. The rapid absorp-
tion of oxygen by the leaves in the fall months
produces, in northern America, these vivid tints

which country the appearance of a


give to the
land covered with a varied and brilliant garment,
"
a coat of many colors." soft, hazy light per- A
vaded the atmosphere, while at the same time
the October airwas gently exhilarating to the
nervous system. At six o'clock p. M. the canoe
78 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

arrived at Hudson City, which is on the east


bank of the river, and I completed a row of
thirty-eight statute miles, according to local au-
thority; but in reality forty-nine miles by the
correct charts of the United States Coast Survey.
After storing the Maria Theresa in a shed, I re-
paired to a dismal hotel for the night.
At seven o'clock the next morning the river
was mantled dense fog, but I pushed off and
in a

guided myself by the sounds of the running


trains on the Hudson River Railroad. This cor-
poration does suchimmense amount of
an
freighting that, were con-
if their freight trains

nected, a continuous line of eighty miles would


be constructed, of which sixteen miles are
always in transit day and night. Steamboats
and tugs with canal-boats in tow were groping
about the river in the misty darkness, blowing
whistles every few minutes to let people know
that the pilot was not sleeping at the wheel.
There was a grand clearing up at noon; and as
the sun broke through the mist, the beautiful
shores came into view like a vivid flame of
scarlet, yellow, brown, and green. It was the

death-song of summer, and her dying notes the


tinted leaves, each one giving to the wind a sad
strain as it
softly dropped to the earth, or was
quickly hurled into space.
A few miles south of Hudson City, on the
west bank, the Catskill stream enters the river.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 79

From this point the traveller


may penetrate the
picturesque country of the Appalachian range,
where its wild elevations were called Onti Ora 7

or " mountains of the sky," by the aborigines.


Roundout, on the right bank of the Hudson,
is the terminus of the Delaware and Hudson
Canal, which connects it with Port Jervis on the
Delaware, a distance of fifty-four miles. This
town, the outlet of the coal regions, I passed
after meridian. As I left Hudson on the first of
the flood-tide, I had to combat it for several

hours; but easily reached Hyde Park Landing


I

(which is on the left bank of the stream and, by


local authority, thirty-five miles from Hudson

City) at five o'clock p. M. The wharf-house


sheltered the canoe, and a hotel in the village,
half a mile distant on the high plains, its owner.
I was upon by seven o'clock the next
the river

morning. The day was varied by strong gusts


of wind succeeded by calms. Six miles south
of Hyde Park is the beautiful city of Pough-
keepsie with its eighteen thousand inhabitants,
and the celebrated Vassar Female College. Eight
miles down
the river, and on the same side, is a
small village called New
Hamburg. The rocky
promontory at the foot of which the town is

built is covered with the finest arbor vitae forest

probably in existence. Six miles below, on the


west bank, is the important city of Newburg,
one of the termini of the New York and Erie
80 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

Railroad. Four miles below, the river narrows


and presents a grand view of the north entrance
of the Highlands, with the Storm King Mountain
rising fully one thousand five hundred feet above
the tide. The early Dutch navigators gave to
this peak the name of Boter-burg (Butter-Hill),
but was rechristened Storm King by the au-
it

thor N. P. Willis, whose late residence, Idlewild,


commands a fine view of Newburg Bay.
When past the Storm King, the Crow-Nest and
the almost perpendicular front of Kidd's Plug
Cliff tower aloft, and mark the spot where Kidd

(as usual) was supposed to have buried a por-


tion of that immense sum of money with which
popular belief invests hundreds of localities

along the watercourses of the continent. Now


the Narrows above West Point were entered,
and the current against a head-wind made the
passage unusually exciting. The paper canoe
danced over the boiling expanse of water, and
neared the west shore about a mile above the
United States Military Academy, when a shell,
from a gun on the grounds of that institution,
burst in the water within a few feet of the boat.
7

I now observed a target set upon a little flat at

the foot of a gravelly hill close to the beach.


As a second, and finally a third shell exploded
near me, I rowed into the rough water, much dis-
gusted with cadet-practice and military etiquette.
After dark the canoe was landed on the deck of
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 8I

a schooner which was discharging slag or cinder


at Fort Montgomery Landing. I scrambled
up
the hill to the only shelter that could be found, a

small country store owned by a Captain Conk


who kept entertainment for the traveller. Rough
fellows and old crones came in to talk about the
spooks that had been seen in the neighboring
hills. It was "Sleepy Hollow" talk.
veritable
The physician of the place, they said, had been
" skert clean off a
bridge the other night."
Embarking the following morning from this
weird and prominent natural
hilly country, that
feature, Anthony's Nose, which was located on
the opposite shore, strongly appealed to my im-

agination and somewhat excited my mirth. One


needs a powerful imagination, I thought, to live
in these regions where the native element, the

hill-folk,dwell so fondly and earnestly upon the


ghostly and mysterious. Three miles down the
river, Dunderberg, "the thundering mountain,"
on the west bank, with the town of Peekskill on
the opposite shore, was passed, and I entered
Haverstraw Bay, the widest part of the river.
" "
Here," says the historian, the fresh and salt
water usually contend, most equally, for the
mastery; and here the porpoise is often seen in

large numbers sporting in the summer sun. Here


in the spring vast numbers of shad are caught
while on their way to spawning-beds in fresh-
water coves." Haverstraw Bay was crossed, and
6
82 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

Tarrytown passed, when I came to the pictur-


esque little cottage of a great man now gone
from among us. Many pleasant memories of
his tales rose in my mind as I looked upon
Sunnyside, the home
of Washington Irving,
nestled in the grove of living green, its white
stuccoed walls glistening in the bright sunlight,
and background of grand villas looming up on
its

every side.At Irvington Landing, a little further


down the river, I went ashore to pass Sunday
with friends; and on the Monday following, in a
dense fog, proceeded on my route to New York.
"
Below Irvington the far-famed Palisades,"
bold-faced precipices of trap-rock, offer their
grandest appearance on the west side of the
Hudson. These singular bluffs, near Hoboken,
present a perpendicular front of three hundred or
four hundred feet in height. Piles of broken rock
rest against their base: the contribution of the
cliffs above from the effects of frost and sun.

While approaching the great city of New


York, strong squalls of wind, blowing against
the ebb-tide, sent swashy waves into my open
canoe, the sides of which, amidships, were only
five or six inches above water; but the great

buoyancy of the light craft and its very smooth


exterior created but little friction in the water
and made her very seaworthy, when carefully
watched and handled, even without a deck of
canvas or wood. While the canoe forged ahead
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 83

through the troubled waters, and the breezes


loaded with the saltness of the sea now near at
hand struck my back, I confess that a longing to
reach Philadelphia, where I could complete my
outfit and increase the safety of my little craft,

gave renewed vigor to my stroke as I exchanged


the quiet atmosphere of the country for the
smoke and noise of the city. Every instinct was
now challenged, and every muscle brought into
action, as I dodged tug-boats, steamers, yachts,
and vessels, while
running the thoroughfare
along the crowded wharves between New York
on one side and Jersey City on the other. I
found the slips between the piers most excellent
ports of refuge at times, when the ferry-boats,
following each other in quick succession, made
the river with its angry tide boil like a vortex.
The task soon ended, and I left the Hudson at
Castle Garden and entered the upper bay of New
York harbor. As it was dark, I would gladly
have gone ashore for the night, but a great city
offers no inducement for a canoeist to land as a

stranger at its wharves.


A much more pleasant reception awaited me
down on Staten Island, a gentleman having noti-
fied me by mail that he would welcome the ca-
noe and its owner. The ebb had ceased, and
the incoming tide was being already felt close
in shore; so with tide and wind against me,
and the darkness of night settling down gloomily
84 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

upon the wide bay, I pulled a strong oar for five

miles to the entrance of Kill Van Kull Strait,


which separates Staten Island from New Jersey
and connects the upper bay with Raritan Bay.
The bright beams from the light-house on
Robbin's Reef, which is one mile and a quarter
off the entrance of the strait, guided me on my
course. The head-sea, in little, splashy waves,
began to fill
my canoe. The water soon reached
the foot-rest; but there was no time to stop to
bale out the boat, for a friendly current was near,
and if once reached, my little craft would enter
smoother waters. The flood which poured into
the mouth of Kill Van Kull soon caught my
boat, and the head-tide was changed to a favor-
able current which carried me in its strong arms
far into the salt-water strait, and I reached West
New Brighton, along the high banks of which I
found my haven of rest. Against the sky I
traced the outlines of land-mark, three pop-
my
lars, standing sentinel-like before the house of
the gentleman who had so kindly offered me his

hospitality. The canoe was emptied of its shift-

ing liquid ballast and


carefully sponged dry.
My host and his son carried it into the main hall
of the mansion and placed it upon the floor,
where the entire household gathered, an admir-
ing group. Proud, indeed, might my dainty
crafthave been of the appreciation of so lovely
a company. Her master fully appreciated the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 85

generous board of his kind host, and in present


comfort soon forgot past trials and his wet pull
across the upper bay of New York harbor.
My work for the next day, October 27th, was
the navigation of the interesting strait of the old
Dutch settlers and the Raritan River, of New
.

Jersey, as far as New Brunswick. The average


width of Kill Van Kull is three-eighths of a mile.
From its entrance, at Constable's Point, to the
mouth of Newark Bay, which enters it on the
Jersey side, it is three miles, and nearly two
miles across the bay to Elizabethport. Bergen
Point is on the east and Elizabethport on the west
entrance of the bay, while on Staten Island, New
Brighton, Factoryville, and North Shore, furnish
homes for many New York business men.
At Elizabethport the strait narrows to one
eighth of a mile, and as the mouth of the Rah-
way is approached it widens. It now runs

through marshes for most of the way, a distance


of twelve miles to Raritan Bay, which is an arm
of the lower bay of New York harbor. The
strait, from Elizabethport to its mouth, is called
Arthur Kill; the whole distance through the
Kills, from Constable's Point to Raritan Bay, is
about seventeen statute miles. At the mouth of
Arthur Kill the Raritan River opens to the bay,
and the city of Perth Amboy rests on the point
of high land between the river and the strait.
Roseville and Tottenville are on the Staten
86 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

Island shores of Arthur Kill, the former six


miles, the latter ten miles from Elizabethport.
The tide runs swiftly through the Kills. Leav-
ing Mr. Campbell's residence at nine A. M., with
a tide in my favor as far as Newark Bay, I soon
had the tide against me from the other Kill until
I passed theRahway River, when it commenced
to ebb towards Raritan Bay. The marshy shores
of the Kills were submerged in places by the
high tide, but their monotony was relieved by
the farms upon the hills back of the flats.
At one o'clock my canoe rounded the heights
upon which Perth Amboy is perched, with its

snug cottages, the homes of many oystermen


whose fleet of boats was anchored in front of the

town. Curious yard-like pens constructed of


poles rose out of the water, in which boats could
find shelter from the rough sea.
The entrance to the Raritan River is wide,
and above its mouth it is crossed by a long rail-
road bridge. The pull up the crooked river
(sixteen miles) against a strong ebb-tide, through
extensive reedy marshes, was uninteresting. I

came upon the entrance of the canal which con-


nects the rivers Raritan and Delaware after six
o'clock P. M., which at this season of the year
was after dark. Hiding the canoe in a secure
place I went to visit an old friend, Professor
George Cook, of the New Jersey State Geological
Survey, who resides at New Brunswick. In the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 87

morning the professor kindly assisted me, and


we climbed the high bank of the canal with the
canoe upon our shoulders, putting it into the
water below the first two locks. I now com-
menced an unexciting row of forty-two miles to
Bordentown, on the Delaware, where this artifi-
cialwatercourse ends.
This canal is much travelled by steam tugs
towing schooners of two hundred tons, and by
barges and canal-boats of all sizes drawing not
above seven feet and a half of water. The
boats are drawn through the locks by stationary
steam-engines, the use of which is discontinued
when the business becomes slack; then the boat-
men use their mules for the same purpose. To
tow an average-sized canal-boat, loaded, requires
four mules, while an empty one is easily drawn

by two. It proved most expeditious as well as


convenient not to trouble the lock-master to open
the gates, but to secure his assistance in carrying
the canoe along the tow-path to the end of the
lock, which service occupied less than five min-
utes. In this way was carried around
the canoe
seven locks the first
day, and when dusk ap-
proached she was sheltered beside a paper shell
in the boat-house of Princeton College Club,
which is located on the banks of the canal about
one mile and a half from the city of Princeton.
In this narrow watercourse these indefatiga-
ble collegians, under great disadvantages, drill
88 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

their crews for the annual intercollegiate struggle


for championship. One Noah Reed provided
entertainment for man and beast at his country
inn half a mile from the boat-house, and thither
I repaired for the night.

This day's row of twenty-six miles and a


half had been through a hilly country, abound-

ing in rich farm lands which were well culti-


vated. The next morning an officer of the
Princeton Bank awaited my coming on the banks
of the sluggish canal. He had taken an early
walk from the town to see the canoe. At Bak-
er'sBasin the bridge-tender, a one-legged man,
pressed me to tarry till he could summon the
Methodist minister, who had charged him to no-
tify him of the approach of a paper canoe.

Through all my boat journeys I have remarked


that professional men take more interest in canoe

journeys than professional oarsmen; and nearly


all the canoeists of my acquaintance are minis-
ters of the gospel. It is an innocent way of ob-
taining relaxation; and opportunities thus offered
the weary clergyman of studying nature in her
ever-changing but always restful moods, must
indeed be grateful after being for months in daily
contact with the world, the flesh, and the devil.
The tendency of the present age to liberal ideas
permits clergymen in large towns and cities to
drive fast horses, and spend an hour of each day
at a harmless game of billiards, without giving
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 89

rise to remarks from his own congregation, but


let the overworked rector of a country village

seek in his friendly canoe that relief which nature


offers to the tired brain, let him go into the wil-
derness and live close to his Creator by studying
his works, and a whole community vex him on
"
his return with the appearance of the thing."
These self-constituted critics, who are generally

ignorant of the laws which God has made to se-


cure health and give contentment to his creatures,
would poison the sick man's body with drugs and
nostrums when he might havethe delightful and

generally successful services of Dr. Camp Cure


without the after dose of a bill. These hard-
worked and miserably paid country clergymen,
who are rarely, nowadays, treated as the head
of the congregation or the shepherd of the flock
they are supposed to lead, but rather as victims
of the whims of influential members of the
church, tell me that to own a canoe is indeed a
cross, and that they spend a vacation in the
if

grand old forests of the Adirondacks, the breth-


ren are sorely exercised over the time wasted in
such unusual and unministerial conduct.
Everywhere along the route the peculiar char-
acter of the paper' canoe attracted many remarks
from the bystanders. The first impression given
was that I had engaged in this rowing enterprise
under the stimulus of a bet; and when the cu-
rious were informed that it was a voyage of
90 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

study, the next question was, "How much are you


going to make out of it?" Upon learning that
there was neither a bet nor money
I
in it, a shade
of disappointment and incredulity rested upon
the features of the bystanders, and the canoeist
was often rated as a " blockhead " for risking his
life without being paid for it.

At Trenton the canal passes through the city,


and here it was necessary to carry the boat
around two locks. At noon the canoe ended
her voyage of forty-two miles by reaching the
last lock, on the Delaware River, at Bordentown,
New Jersey, where friendly arms received the
Maria Theresa and placed her on the trestles
which had supported her sister craft, the Mayeta,
in the shop of the builder, Mr. J. S. Lamson,
situated under the high cliffs along the crests of
which an ex-king of Spain, in times gone by,
was wont to walk and sadly ponder on his exile
from la belle France.
The Rev. John H. Brakeley, proprietor as well
as principal of the Bordentown Female Sem-

inary, took me to his ancient mansion, where


Thomas Paine, of old Revolutionary war times,
had lodged. Not the least attraction in the
home of my friend was the group of fifty young
ladies, who were kind enough to gather upon a
high bluff when I left the town, and wave a
graceful farewell to the paper canoe as she en-
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 91

tered the tidal current of the river Delaware en


route for the Quaker city.

During my short stay in Bordentown Mr.


Isaac Gabel kindly acted as my guide, and we

explored the Bonaparte Park, which is on the


outskirts of the town. The grounds are beauti-
fully laid out. Some of the old houses of the
ex-king's friends and attendants still remain in a

fair state of preservation. The


elegant residence
of Joseph Bonaparte, or the Count de Surveil-
liers, which was always open to American vis-
itors of all classes, was torn down by Mr. Henry
Beckett, an Englishman in the diplomatic ser-
vice of the British government, who purchased
this property some years after the Count returned
to Europe, and erected a more elaborate man-
sion near the old site. The old citizens of Bor-
dentown hold in grateful remembrance the fa-
vors showered upon them by Joseph Bonaparte
and his family, who seem to have lived a dem-
ocratic life in the grand old park. The Count
returned to France in 1838, and never visited
the United States again. New Jersey had wel-
comed the exiled monarch, and had given him
certain legal privileges in property rights which
New York had refused him; so he settled upon
the lovely shores of the fair Delaware, and lav-
ished his wealth upon the people of the state
which had so kindly received him. The citizens
of neighboring states becoming somewhat jeal-
92 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

ous of the good luck that had befallen New Jer-


sey in her capture of the Spanish king, applied
"
to the state the cognomen of New Spain,"
and called the inhabitants thereof " Spaniards."
The Delaware River, the Makeriskitton of the
savage, upon whose noble waters my paper
canoe was now to carry me southward, has its
sources in the western declivity of the Catsjdll
Mountains, in the state of New York. It is fed
by two tributary streams, the Oquago (or Co-
quago) and the Popacton, which unite their
waters at the boundary line of Pennsylvania, at
the northeast end of the state, from which it
flows southward seventy miles, separating the
Empire and Keystone states. When near Port
Jervis, which town is connected with Rondout,
on the Hudson River, by the Hudson and Del-
aware Canal, the Delaware turns sharply to the
southwest, and becomes the boundary line be-
tween the states of New Jersey and Pennsyl-
vania. Below Easton the river again takes a
southeasterly course, and flowing past Trenton,
Bristol, Bordentown, Burlington, Philadelphia,
Camden, Newcastle, and Delaware City, empties
its waters into Delaware Bay about forty miles

below Philadelphia.
This river has about the same length as the
Hudson three hundred miles. The tide
reaches one hundred and thirty-two miles from
the sea at Cape May and Cape Henlopen. Phil-
VOYAGE OP THE PAPER CANOE. 93

adelphia is the head of navigation for vessels of


the heaviest tonnage; Trenton for light-draught
steamboats. At Bordentown the river is less
than half a mile wide; at Philadelphia it is
three-fourths of a mile in width; while at Del-
aware City it widens to two miles and a half.
Delaware Bay is twenty-six miles across in the
widest part, which is some miles within the
entrance of the Capes.
October 3ist was cool and gusty. The river
route to Philadelphia is twenty-nine statute miles.
The passage was made against a strong head-wind,
with swashy waves, which made me again regret
that I did not have my canoe-decking made at

Troy, instead of at Philadelphia. The highly-


cultivated farms and beautiful country-seats along
both the Pennsylvania and New Jersey sides
of the river spoke highly of the rich character
of the soil and the thrift of the inhabitants.
These river counties of two states may be called
a land of plenty, blessed with bountiful har-
vests.

Quaker industry and wise economy in man-


aging the agricultural affairs of this section in
the early epochs of our country's settlement
have borne good fruit. All praise to the mem-
ory of William Penn of Pennsylvania and his
worthy descendants. The old towns of Bris-
tol on the right, and Burlington on the left
94 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

bank, embowered in vernal shades, have a most


comfortable and home-like appearance.
At five o'clock p. M. I arrived at the city pier
opposite the warehouse of Messrs. C. P. Knight
& Brother, No. 114 South Delaware Avenue,
where, after a struggle with wind and wave for
eight hours, the canoe was landed and deposited
w ith
r
the above firm, the gentlemen of which

kindly offered to care for it while I tarried in


"
the City of Brotherly Love."
Among the many interesting spots hallowed
by memories of the past in which Philadelphia
abounds, and which are rarely sought out by
visitors, two especially claim the attention of
the naturalist. One is the old home of Wil-
liam Bartram, on the banks of the Schuylkill at
Grey's Ferry; the other, the grave of Alexander
Wilson, friends and co-laborers in nature's ex-
tended field; the first a botanist, the second the
father ofAmerican ornithology.
William Bartram, son of the John Bartram
who was the founder of the Botanic Garden on
the west bank of the Schuylkill, was born at
that interesting spot in 1739. All botanists are
familiar with the results of his patient labors and
his pioneer travels in those early days, through
the wilderness of what now constitutes the
southeastern states. One who visited him at his
home says: "Arrived at the botanist's garden,
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 95

we approached an old man who, with a rake in


his hand, was breaking the clods of earth in a
tulip-bed. His hat was old, and flapped over
his face; his coarse shirt was seen near his neck,
as he wore no cravat nor kerchief; his waistcoat
and breeches were both of leather, and his shoes
were tied with leather strings. We approached
and accosted him. He ceased his work, and
entered into conversation with the ease and
politeness of nature's nobleman. His coun-
tenance was expressive of benignity and happi-
ness. This was the botanist, traveller and phi-
losopher we had come to see."
William Bartram gave important assistance
and encouragement to the friendless Scotch ped-
agogue, Alexander Wilson, while the latter was
preparing his American Ornithology for the
press. This industrious and peaceable botanist
died within the walls of his dearly-loved home
a few minutes after he had penned a description
of a plant. He died in 1823, in the eighty-fifth
year of his age. The old house of John and
William Bartram remains nearly the same as
when the last Bartram died, but the grounds
have been occupied and improved by the present
proprietor, whose fine mansion is near the odd
residence of the two botanists.
Without ample funds to enable him to carry
out his bold design, Alexander Wilson labored
96 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

and suffered in body and mind for several years,


until his patient and persistent efforts achieved
the success they so richly merited. All but the
last volume of his American Ornithology were
completed when the overworked naturalist died.
The old Swedes' Church is the' most ancient
religious edifice in Philadelphia, and is located
near the wharves in the vicinity of Christian and
Swanson streets, in the old district of South-
wark. The Swedes had settlements on the Del-
aware before Penn visited America. They built
a wooden edifice for worship in 1677, on the
"
spot where the brick Swedes' Church " now
stands, and which was erected in 1700. Thread-
ing narrow with the stenographic re-
streets,

porter of the courts, Mr. R. A. West, for my


guide, we came into a quiet locality where the
ancient landmark reared its steeple, like the fin-
ger of faith pointing heavenward. Few indeed
must be the fashionable Christians who worship
under its unpretentious roof, but there
is an air

of antiquity surrounding it which interests every


visitor who enters its venerable doorway.
The church-yard is very contracted in area,
yet there is room for trees to grow within its
sacred precincts, and birds sometimes rest there
while pursuing their flight from the Schuylkill
to the Delaware. Among the crowded graves
is a square brick structure, covered with an hor-
izontal slab of white marble, upon which I read:
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 97
" THIS MONUMENT COVERS THE REMAINS OF
ALEXANDER WILSON,
AUTHOR OF THE AMERICAN ORNITHOLOGY.
HE WAS BORN IN RENFREWSHIRE, SCOTLAND, ON THE 6 JULY, 1766;
EMIGRATED TO THE UNITED STATES IN THE YEAR 1794;
AND DIED IN PHILADELPHIA, OF THE DYSENTERY,
/

ON THE 23 AUGUST, 1813, AGED 47.

Ingenio stat sine morte decus."

"
Philadelphia has been called the city of
homes," and well does she merit that comforta-
bly sounding title, for it is not a misnomer..
Unlike some other large American cities, the
artisan and laborer can here own a home by

becoming a member of a building association


and paying the moderate periodical dues. Miles,
upon miles of these cosy little houses, of five or
six rooms each, may be found, the inmates of
which are a good and useful class of citizens,
adding strength to the city's discipline and gov-
ernment.
The grand park ofthree thousand acres, one
of, if not the largest in the world, is near at

hand, where the poor as well as the rich can


resort at pleasure. I took leave of the beautiful

and well laid-out city with a pang of regret not


usual with canoeists, who find it best for their
comfort and peace of mind to keep with their
dainty crafts away from the heterogeneous and
not over-civil population which gathers along
the water-fronts of a port.

7
98 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

CHAPTER VII.

PHILADELPHIA TO CAPE HENLOPEN.

DESCENT OF DELAWARE RIVER. MY FIRST CAMP. BOMBAY


HOOK. MURDERKILL CREEK. A STORM IN DELAWARE BAY.
CAPSIZING OF THE CANOE. A SWIM FOR LIFE. THE PER-
SIMMON GROVE. WILLOW GROVE INN. THE LIGHTS OF
CAPES MAY AND HENLOPEN.

November 9, was a cold, wet


MONDAY,
day. Mr. Knight and the old, enthusi-
astic gunsmith-naturalist of the city, Mr. John
Krider, assisted me to embark in my now
decked, provisioned, and loaded canoe. The
stock of condensed food would easily last me a
month, while the blankets and other parts of the
outfit were good for the hard usage of four or
five months. My friends shouted adieu as the
little craft shot out from the pier and rapidly

descended the river with the strong ebb-tide


which for two hours was in her favor. The
anchorage of the iron Monitor fleet at League
Island was soon passed, and the great city sank
into the gloom of its smoke and the clouds of

rainy mist which enveloped it.

This pull was an exceedingly dreary one. The


storms of winter were at hand, and even along
MARIA THERESA
.,

From ye+v~lork Cit\'t<>2,<>M:v../><-/.

'/
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 99

the watercourses between Philadelphia and Nor-


folk, Virginia, thin ice would soon be forming in
the shallow coves and creeks. It would be

necessary to exert all my energies to get south


of Hatteras, which is located on the North Car-
olina coast in a region of storms and local dis-
turbances. The canoe, though heavily laden,
behaved well. I now enjoyed the advantages

resulting from the possession of the new canvas


deck-cover, which, being fastened by buttons
along each gunwale of the canoe, securely cov-
ered the boat, so that the occasional swash sent
aboard by wicked tug-boats and large schooners
did not annoy me or wet my precious cargo.

By two o'clock p. M. the rain and wind caused


me to seek shelter at Mr. J. C. Beach's cottage,
at Markus Hook, some twenty miles below
Philadelphia, and on the same side of the river.
While Mr. Beach was varnishing the little craft,
crowds of people came to feel of the canoe, giv-
ing it the usual punching with their finger-nails,
"
to see if it were truly paper." A young Meth-
odist minister with his pretty wife came also to

satisfy their curiosity on the paper question, but


the dominie offered me not a word of encourage-
ment in my
undertaking. He shook his head
and whispered to his wife: "A wild, wild enter-
prise indeed." Markus Hook derived its name
from Markee, an Indian chief, who sold it to the
civilized white man for four barrels of whiskey.
100 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

The next morning, in a dense fog, I followed


the shores of the river, crossing the Pennsylvania
and Delaware boundary line half a mile below
the "Hook," and entered Delaware, the little state
of three counties. Thirty-five miles below, the
water becomes salt. Reaching New Castle,
which contained half its present number of
inhabitants before Philadelphia was founded, I

pulled across to the New


Jersey side of the river
and skirted the marshy shore past the little Pea
Patch Island, upon which rises in sullen dreari-
ness Fort Delaware. West of the island is
Delaware City, where the Chesapeake and Del-
aware Canal, fourteen miles in length, has one
of its termini, the other being on a river which
empties into Chesapeake Bay. Philadelphia and
Baltimore steamboat lines utilize this canal in
the passage of their boats from one city to the
other.
After crossing Salem Cove, and passing its
southern point, Elsinborough, five miles and a
half below Fort Delaware, the inhospitable
marshes became wide and desolate, warning me
to secure a timely shelter for the night. Nearly
two miles below Point Elsinborough the high
reeds were divided by a little creek, into which I
ran my canoe, for upon the muddy bank could be
seen a deserted, doorless fish-cabin, into which I
moved my blankets and provisions, after cutting
with my pocket-knife an ample supply of dry
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. IOI

reeds for a bed. Drift-wood, which a friendly


tide had deposited around the shanty, furnished
the material for my fire, which lighted up the
dismal hovel most cheerfully. And thus I kept
house in a comfortable manner till morning,
being well satisfied with the progress I had
made that day in traversing the shores of three
states. The booming of the guns of wild-fowl
shooters out upon the water roused me before
dawn, and I had ample time before the sun arose
to prepare breakfast from the remnant of canned
ox-tail soup left over from last night's supper.
I was now in Delaware Bay, which was assum-
ing noble proportions. From my camp I crossed
to thewest shore below Reedy Island, and, filling
my water-bottles at a farm-house, kept upon that
shore all day. The wind up a
arose, stirring
rough sea as I approached Bombay Hook, where
the bay is eight miles wide. I tried to land upon
the salt marshes, over the edges of which the

long, low seas were breaking, but failed in sev-


eral attempts. At last roller after roller, follow-
ing in quick succession, carried the little craft on
their crests to the land, and packed her in a
thicket of high reeds.
I quickly disembarked, believing it useless to

attempt to go further that day. About an eighth


of a mile from the water, rising out of the salt
grass and reeds, was a mound, covered by
little

trees and bushes, into which I conveyed my


102 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

cargo by the back-load, and then easily drew the


light canoe over the level marsh to the camp.
A bed of reeds was soon cut, into which the
canoe was settled to prevent her from, being
strained by the occupant at night, for I was de-
termined to test the strength of the boat as sleep-
ing-quarters. Canoes one person are
built for

generally too light for such occupancy when out


of water. The tall fringe of reeds which encir-
cled the boat formed an excellent substitute for
chamber walls, giving me all the starry blue
heavens for a ceiling, and most effectually screen-
ing me from the strong wind which was blowing.
As it was when the boat was driven ashore,
early
I had time wander down to the brook, which
to
was a mile distant, and replenish my scanty stock
of water.
With the canvas deck-cover and rubber blan-
ket to keep off the heavy dews, the first night
passed in such contracted lodgings was endurable,
if not wholly convenient and agreeable. The
river mists were not dispelled the next day until
nine o'clock, when I quitted my warm nest in
the reeds and rowed down the bay, which seemed
to grow broader as I advanced. The bay was
still bordered by extensive marshes, with here

and there the habitation of man located upon


some slight elevation of the surface. Having
rowed twenty-six miles, and being off the mouth
of Murderkill Creek, a squall struck the canoe and
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 103

forced on to an oyster reef, upon the sharp


it

shells of which she was rocked for several min-


utes by the shallow breakers. Fearing that the
paper shell was badly cut, though it was still
early in the afternoon, I ascended the creek of
ominous name and associations to the landing of
an inn kept by Jacob Lavey, where I expected to
overhaul my To my surprise and
injured craft.
great relief of mind there were found only a few
superficial scratches upon the horn-like shel-
lacked surface of the paper shell. To apply
shellac with a heated iron to the wounds made

by the oyster-shells was the work of a few min-


utes, and my craft was as sound as ever. The
"
gunner's resort, Bower's Beach Hotel," fur-
nished an excellent supper of oyster fritters, pan-
fish, and fried pork-scrapple. Mine host, before
a blazing wood fire, told me of the origin of the
name of Murderkill Creek.
"
In the early settlement of the country," be-
"
gan the innkeeper, the white settlers did all
they could to civilize the Indians, but the cussed
savages wouldn't take to it kindly, but worried
the life out of the new-comers. At last a great
landed proprietor, who held a big grant of land
in these parts, thought he'd settle the troubles.
So he planted a brass cannon near the creek,
and invited all the Indians of the neighborhood
to come and hear the white man's Great Spirit
talk. The crafty man got the savages before the
104 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

mouth of the cannon, and said, r


Now
look into
the hole there, for it is the mouth of the white
man's Great Spirit, which will soon speak in tones
of thunder.' The fellow then touched off the
gun, and knocked half the devils into splinters.
The others were so skeerd at the big voice they
had heard that they were afraid to move, and
were soon all killed by one charge after another
from the cannon: so the creek has been called
Murderkill ever since."
I afterwards discovered that there were other
places on the coast which had the same legend
as the one told me by the innkeeper. Holders
of small farms lived in the vicinity of this tavern,
but the post-office was at Frederica, five miles
inland. Embarking the next day, I felt sure of
ending my cruise on Delaware Bay before night,
as the quiet morning exhibited no signs of rising
winds. The little pilot town of Lewes, near
Cape Delaware, and behind the Breakwater, is a
port of refuge for storm-bound vessels. From
this village I expected to make a portage of six
miles to Love Creek, a tributary of Rehoboth
Sound. The frosty nights were now exerting a
sanitary influence over the malarial districts
which I had entered, and the unacclimated ca-

noeist of northern birth could safely pursue his

journey, and sleep at night in the swamps along


the fresh-water streams if protected from the
dews by a rubber or canvas covering. hopes My
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 105

of reaching the open sea that night were to be


drowned, and in cold water too; for that day,
which opened so calmly and with such smiling
promises, was destined to prove a season of trial,
and before its evening shadows closed around
me, to witness a severe struggle for life in the
cold waters of Delaware Bay.
An hour after leaving Murderkill Creek the
wind came from the north in strong squalls.

My boat
little taking the blasts on her quarter,
kept herself free of the swashy seas hour after
hour. I kept as close to the
sandy beach of the
great marshes as possible, so as to be near the
land in case an accident should happen. Mis-
pillion Creek and a light-house on the north of
its mouth were passed, when the wind and seas
struck on the port beam, and continually
my boat
crowded her ashore. The water breaking on
the hard, sandy beach of the marshy coast made
it too much of a risk to
attempt a landing, as the
canoe would be smothered in the swashy seas if
her headway was checked for a moment. Amid-
ships the canoe was only a few inches out of
water, but her great sheer, full bow, and smooth-
ness of hull, with watchful management, kept her
from swamping. had struggled along for
I

fourteen miles since morning, and was fatigued


by the consequent upon the continued ma-
strain

noeuvring of my boat through the rough waves.


I reached a point on Slaughter Beach, where the
106 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

bay has a width of nearly nineteen miles, when


the tempest rose to such a pitch that the great
raging seas threatened every moment to wash
over my canoe, and me by their
to force violence
close into the beach. To my alarm, as the boat
rose and on the waves, the heads of sharp-
fell

pointed stakes appeared and disappeared in the


broken waters. They were the stakes of fisher-
men to which they attach their nets in the season
of trout-fishing. The danger of being impaled
on one of these forced me off shore again.
There was no undertow; the seas being driven
over shoals were irregular and broken. At last my
sea came. It rolled up without a crest, square
and formidable. I could not calculate where it
would break, but I
away from it
pulled for life

towards the beach upon which the sea was


breaking with deafening sound. It was only for
a moment that I beheld the great brown wave,
which bore with it the mud of the shoal, bearing
down upon me; for the next, it broke astern,
sweeping completely over the canoe from stern
to stem, filling it through the opening of the
canvas round my Body. Then for a while the
watery area was almost smooth, so completely
had the great wave levelled it. The canoe be-
ing water-logged, settled below the surface,
the high points of the ends occasionally emer-
ging from the water. Other heavy seas followed
the first, one of which striking me as high as my
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 107

head and shoulders, turned both the canoe and


canoeist upside-down.
Kicking myself free of the canvas deck, I
struck out from under the shell, and quickly
rose to the surface. It was then that the words

of an author of a European Canoe Manual came


to mind: " When you capsize, first right the
my
canoe and get astride it over one end, keeping
your legs in the water; when you have crawled
to the well or cockpit, bale out the boat with
your hat." Comforting as these instructions
from an experienced canoe traveller seemed
when reading them my hermitage ashore, the
in

present application of them (so important a


principle in Captain Jack Bunsby's log of life)
was in this emergency an impossibility; for my
hat had disappeared with the seat-cushion and
one iron outrigger, \vhile the oars were floating
to leeward with the canoe.
The
boat having turned keel up, her great
sheer would have righted her had it not been for
the cargo,which settled itself on the canvas
deck-cloth, and ballasted the craft in that posi-
tion. So smooth were her polished sides that it
was impossible to hold on to her, for she rolled
about like a slippery porpoise in a tideway.
Having tested and proved futile the kind sug-
gestions of writers on marine disasters, and feel-
ing very stiff in the icy water, I struck out in an
almost exhausted condition for the shore. Now
108 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

a new experience taught me an interesting les-


son. The seas rolled over my head and shoul-
ders in such rapid succession, that I found I

could not get my head above water to breathe,


while the sharp sand kept in suspension by the
agitated water scratched my face, and filled my
and ears. While I felt this press-
eyes, nostrils,
ing down and burying tendency of the seas, as
they broke upon my head and shoulders, I un-
derstood the reason why so many good swim-
mers are drowned in attempting to reach the
shore from a wreck on a shoal, when the wind,
though blowing heavily, is in the victim's favor.
The land was not over an eighth of a mile away,
and from it came the sullen roar of the breakers,
pounding their heavy weight upon the sandy
shingle. As booming thunders or its angry,
its

swashing sound increased, I knew I was rapidly


nearing it, but, blinded by the boiling waters, I
could see nothing.
At such a moment do not stop to make vows
as to how you will treat your neighbor in future
if once safely landed, but strike out, fight as you
never fought before, swallowing as little water
as possible, and never relaxing an energy or

yielding a hope. The water shoaled; my feet


felt the bottom, and I stood up, but a roller laid

me flat on my face. Up again and down again,


swimming and crawling, I emerged from the
sea, bearing, I fear, a closer resemblance to Jo-
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 109

nah (being at last pitched on shore) than to


Cabnel's Venus, who was borne gracefully upon
the rosy crests of the sky-reflecting waves to
the soft bed of sparkling foam awaiting her.
Wearily dragging myself up the hard shingle,
I stood and contemplated the little streams of

water pouring from my woollen clothes. A new


danger awaited me as the cold wind whistled
down the barren beach and across the desolate
marshes. I danced about to keep warm, and for
a moment thought that my canoe voyage had
come to an unfortunate termination. Then a

buoyant feeling succeeded the moment's de-


pression, and I felt that this was only the first
of many trials which were necessary to prepare
me for the successful completion of my under-
taking. But where was the canoe, with its pro-
visions that were to sustain me, and the charts
which were point out my way through the
to

labyrinth of waters she was yet to traverse?


She had drifted near the shore, but would not
land. There was no time consider the pro-
to

priety of again entering the water. The struggle


was a short though severe one, and I dragged
my boat ashore.
Everything was wet excepting what was most
needed, a flannel suit, carefully rolled in a

water-proof cloth. I knew that I must change


my wet clothes for dry ones, or perish. This
was no easy task to perform, with hands be-
110 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

numbed and limbs paralyzed with the cold. O


shade of Benjamin Franklin, did not one of thy
kinsmen, in his wide experience as a traveller,
foresee this very disaster, and did he not, when
I left the " City of Brotherly Love," force upon
me an antidote, a sort of spiritual" fire, which my
New England temperance principles made me
"
refuse to accept? very old," he whis-
It is old,

pered, as he slipped the flask into my coat-pock-

et, "and it
may save your life. Don't be foolish.
I have kept it well bottled. It is a pure article,

and cost sixteen dollars per gallon. I use it only


for medicine" I found the flask; the -water
had not injured it. A small quantity was taken,
when a most favorable change came over my
entire system, mental as well as physical, and I
was able to throw oflf one suit and put on an-
other in the icy wind, that might, without the
stimulant, have ended my voyage of life.
I had doctored myself homoeopathically under
the old practice. Filled with feelings of grat-
itude to the Great Giver of good, I reflected, as
I carried my wet
cargo into the marsh, upon the
wonderful effects of my friend's medicine when
taken only as medicine. Standing upon the cold
beach and gazing into the sea, now lashed by
the wild frenzy of the wind, I determined never
again to do so mean a thing as to say a bad
word against good brandy.
Having relieved my conscience by this just
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. Ill

resolve, I transported the whole of my wet but


still precious cargo to a persimmon grove, on
a spot of firm land that rose out of the marsh,
where I made a convenient wind-break by
stretching rubber blankets between trees. On
this knoll I built a fire, obtaining the matches
to kindle it from a water-proof safe presented to
me by Mr. Epes Sargent, of Boston, some years
before, when I was ascending the St. Johns
River, Florida.
Before dusk, all things not spoiled by the
water were dried and secreted in the tall sedge
of the marshes. The elevation which had given
"
me friendly shelter is known as Hog Island."
The few persimmon-trees that grew upon it fur-
nished an ample lunch, for the frosts had mel-
lowed the plum-like fruit, making it sweet and
edible. The persimmon (Diospyrus Virgini-
ana} is a small tree
usually found in the middle
and southern states. Coons and other animals
feastupon its fruit. The deepening gloom
warned me to seek comfortable quarters for the
night.
Two miles up the strand was an old gunners'
inn, to which I bent
my steps along Slaughter
Beach, praying that one more day's effort would
take me out of this bleak region of ominous
names. A
pleasant old gentleman, Mr. Charles
Todd, kept the tavern, known as Willow Grove
Hotel, more for amusement than for profit. I
112 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

said nothing to him about the peculiar manner


in which had landed on Slaughter Beach; but
I

to his inquiry as to where my boat was, and


what kind of a boat it was to live in such a
blow, I replied that I found it too wet and cold
on the bay to remain there, and too rough to
proceed to Cape Henlopen, and there being no
alternative, was obliged to land much against
I

my inclination, and in doing so was drenched to


the skin, but had managed to get dry before a
fire in the marshes. So the kind old man piled
small logs in the great kitchen fireplace, and
told me tale upon tale of his life as a school-
master out west; of the death of his wife there,
and of his desire to return, after long years of
absence, to his native Delaware, where he could
be comfortable, and have all the clams, oysters,
fish, and bay truck generally that a man could
wish for.
" "
Now," he added, I shall spend my last

days here in peace." He furnished an excellent


supper of weak-fish or sea trout ( Otolithus re-
galia), fried oysters, sweet potatoes, &c.
This locality offers a place of retirement for
men of small means and limited ambition. The
broad bay is a good sailing and fishing ground,
while the great marshes are the resort of many
birds. The light, warm soil responds generously
to little cultivation. After a day of hunting and
fishing, the new-comer can smoke his pipe in
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 113

peace, to the music of crackling flames in the


wide old fireplace. Here he may be comfort-
able,and spend his last days quietly vegetating,
with no criticisms on his deterioration, knowing
that he is running to seed no faster than his

neighbors.
The wind had gone to rest with the sun, and
the sharp frost that followed left its congealed
breath upon the shallow pools of water nearly
half an inch in thickness by morning. From
my bed I could see through the window the
bright flashes May and Cape Hen-
from Cape
lopen lights. Had not misfortune beset me, a
four-hours' pull would have landed me at Lewes.
There was much to be thankful for, however.
Through a merciful Providence it was my priv-
ilege to enjoy a soft bed at the Willow Grove
Inn, and not a cold one on the sands of Slaugh-
ter Beach. So ended my last day on Delaware
Bay.
114 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

CHAPTER VIII.

FROM CAPE HENLOPEN TO NORFOLK, VIRGINIA.

THE PORTAGE TO LOVE CREEK. THE DELAWARE WHIPPING-


POST. REHOBOTH AND INDIAN RIVER BAYS. A PORTAGE
TO LITTLE ASSAWAMAN BAY. ISLE OF WIGHT BAY. WIN-
CHESTER PLANTATION. CHINCOTEAGUE. WATCHAPREAGUE
INLET. COBB'S ISLAND. CHERRYSTONE. ARRIVAL AT NOR-
FOLK. THE " LANDMARK'S " ENTERPRISE.

M
it.
Y first thought thenext morning was of the
lost outrigger, and how I should replace

My host soon solved the problem for me.


I was scene of the late disaster in
to drive to the
covered wagon, load it with the canoe
his light,
and cargo, and take the shortest route to Love
Creek, six miles from Lewes, stopping on the
way at a blacksmith's for a new outrigger.
We drove over sandy roads, through forests of
pine and oak, to the village of Milton, where a
curious crowd gathered round us and facetiously
asked if we had " brought the canoe all the way
from Troy in that 'ere wagon." The village
smith, without removing the paper boat from her
snug quarters, made a fair outrigger in an hour's
time, when we continued our monotonous ride
li.nit,- <,t' I'.i/'.'i I'.iix'*'

MARIA THERESA

TKatomkin, Jnlet
Crslcu-I.
Inlet.

iRn-tanorc's I.
Little Mauchipo-neio Inlet
fc

rv
O -a Q T \A T
1^- A. t^. V.
K
rS
\ CX
k
& %JL
Vt., -A. TV^^VOu

A\i'V

.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 115

through dreary woods to a clearing upon the


banks of a cedar swamp, where in a cottage
lived Mr. George Webb, to whom Bob Hazzle,

my driver, presented me. Having now reached


Love Creek, I deposited my canoe with Mr.
Webb, and started off for Lewes to view the
town and the ocean.
Across the entrance of Delaware Bay, from
Cape Henlopen Light to Cape May Light on the
southern end of New Jersey, is a distance of
twelve statute miles. Saturday night and Sun-
day were passed in Lewes, which is situated
inside of Cape Henlopen, and behind the cel-
ebrated stone breakwater which was constructed
by the government. This port of refuge is much
frequented by coasters, as many as two or three
hundred sails collecting here during a severe
gale. The government is building a remarka-
ble pier of solid iron spiles, three abreast, which,
when completed, will run out seventeen hun-
dred feet into the bay, and reach a depth of
twenty-three feet of water. Captain Brown, of
the Engineers, was in charge of the work. By the

application of a jet of water, forced by an hydrau-


lic pump through a tube down the outside of

the spile while it is being screwed into the sand,


a puddling^ of the same is kept up, which re-
lieves the strain upon the screw-flanges, and
saves fourteen-fifteenths of the time and labor
usually expended by the old method of inserting
Il6 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the screw spile. This invention was a happy


thought of Captain Brown.
The government has purchased a piece of land
at Lewes for the site of a fort. Some time in the
future there will be a railroad terminating on the

pier, and coal will be brought directly from the


mines supply the fleets which will gather with-
to
in the walls of the Breakwater. Here, free from
all danger of an ice blockade, this port will be-
come a safe and convenient harbor and coaling-
station during the winter time for government
and other vessels.
At dusk on Sunday evening the collector of
the port, Captain Lyons, and his friends, took
me in their carriage back to Love Creek, where
Mr. Webb insisted upon making me the recipi-
ent of his hospitality for the night. A little

crowd of women from the vicinity of the swamp


were awaiting my arrival to see the canoe. One
ancient dame, catching sight of the alcohol-stove
which I took from my vest-pocket, clapped her
thin hands and enthusiastically exclaimed, "What
a nice thing for a sick-room the best nuss-lamp
"
I ever seed! Having satisfied the curiosity of
these people, and been much amused by their

quaint remarks, was


quietly smuggled
I Mr. into
"
Webb's best room," where, if my spirit did not
make feathery flights, it was not the fault of the

downy bed in whose unfathomable depths I now


lost myself.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. I
17

Before leaving Delaware I feel it an impera-


tive duty to the public to refer to one of her
time-honored institutions.
Persons unacquainted with the fact will find
it difficult to believe that one state of the great

American Republic still holds to the practice of


lashing men and women, white and black. Del-
aware one of the smallest states of the Union,
the citizens of which are proverbially generous
and hospitable, a state which has produced a
Bayard is, to her shame we regret to say, the

culprit which sins against the spirit of civilization*


in this nineteenth century, one hundred years
after the fathers of the Republic declared equal
rights for all men. In treating of so delicate a

subject, I desire to do no one injustice; therefore


I will let a native of Delaware speak for his

community.

"
DOVER, DELAWARE, August 2, 18^3.
"EDITOR CAMDEN SPY: According to prom-
ise, I now write you a little about Delaware.
c
Persons your vicinity look upon the Little
in
Diamond State' as a mere bog, or marsh, and
mud and water they suppose are its chief pro-
ductions but, in my opinion, it is one of the
;

finest little states in the Union. Although small,


in proportion to the sizeit
produces more grain
and than any other state in the country, and
fruit

they are unexcelled as regards quality and flavor.


Il8 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

Crime is kept in awe by that best of institutions,


the whipping-post and pillory ! These are the

bugbear of all the northern newspapers, and


they can say nothing too harsh or severe against
them. The whipping-post in Kent County is
situated in the yard of the jail, and is about six
feet in height and three feet in circumference the;

prisoner is fastened to it
by means of
bracelets,
or arms, on the wrist; and the sheriff executes
the sentence of the law by baring the convict to
the waist, and on the bare back lashing him
twenty, forty, or sixty times, according to the
sentence. But the blood does not run in streams
from the prisoner's back, nor is he thrown into a
barrel of brine, and salt sprinkled over the lashes.
On the contrary, I have seen them laugh, and
f

coolly remark that it's good exercise, and gives


us an appetite.' But there are others who raise
the devil's own row with their yells and horrible
cries of pain. The whipping is public, and is
witnessed each time by large numbers of people
who come from miles around to see the culprit
disgraced.
"
Apublic whipping occurred not very long
ago, and the day was very stormy, yet there
were fully three hundred spectators on the ground
to witness thiswholesome punishment! per- A
son whohas been lashed at the whipping-post
cannot vote again in this state; thus, most of the
criminals w ho
T
are whipped leave the state in
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 119

order to regain their citizenship. The newspapers


f
can blow until they are tired about this horrible,
barbaric, and unchristian punishment,' but if their
own states would adopt
this form of punishment,

they would crime continually on the de-


find
crease. What is imprisonment for a few months
or years? It is soon over with; and then they

are again let out upon the community, to beg,


borrow, and steal. But to be publicly whipped
is an everlasting disgrace, and deters men from

committing wrong. Women are whipped in the


same manner, and the}'' take it very hard ; but, to
my recollection, there has not been a female
prisoner for some time. I did not intend to com-
ment so long upon the whipping-posts in the
state ofDelaware.
"The pillory next claims our attention. This
is a long piece of board that runs through the

whipping-post at the top, and has holes [as per


engraving] for the neck and arms to rest in a
very constrained position. The prisoner is com-
pelled to stand on hour with his
his toes for an
neck and arms in the holes, and if he sinks from
exhaustion, as it sometimes happens, the neck is
instantly broken.Josiah Ward, the villain who
escaped punishment for the murder of the man
Wady in your county, came into Delaware,
broke into a shoe-store, succeeded in stealing one

pair of shoes, was arrested, got sixty lashes at


the post, was made to stand in the pillory one
I2O VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

hour, is now
serving out a term of two years'
imprisonment, and he never got the shoes!
The pillory is certainly a terrible and cruel pun-
ishment, and, while I heartily favor the whipping-

post, I think this savage punishment should be


abolished.
"
Since writing the above, I have heard that a
colored woman was convicted of murder in the
second degree last May, and on Saturday the

1
7th of that month received sixty lashes on her
bare back, and stood in the pillory one hour.
"
What do you think of Delaware law, after
what I have written? I have written enough
for the present, so I will close, ever remaining,
:r
Yours very truly,

.For twenty years past, Delaware and Mary-


land farmers have given much attention to peach
culture, which has gradually declined in New
Jersey and states further north. There are said
to be over sixty thousand acres of land on the

peninsula planted with peach-trees, which are


estimated to be worth fifty dollars per acre, or
three million dollars. To harvest this crop re-
quires at least twenty-five thousand men, women,
and children. The planting of an acre of peach-
trees, and its cultivation to maturity, costs from
thirty' to forty dollars. The canners
take a large
portion of the best peaches, which are shipped
to foreign as well as to domestic markets.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 121

The low lands and river-shores of the penin-


sula exhale malaria which attacks the inhabitants
in mild form of ague. During the spring,
a

summer, and early fall months, a prudent man


will not expose himself to the air until after
the sun has risenand dispelled the mists of
morning. The same caution should be observed
all through the low regions of the south, both
as to morning and evening exercise. Chills and
fever are the bane of the southern and middle
states, as this disease affects the health and
elastic vigorof the constitution, and also pro-
duces great mental depression. Yet those who
suffer,even on every alternate day, from chills,
seem to accept the malaria as nothing of much
importance; though it is a well-known fact that
this form of intermittent fever so reduces the

strength, that the system is unable to cope with


other and more dangerous diseases for which it
paves the way.
Upon a little creek, tributary to St. Martin's
River, and near its confluence with the Isle of
Wight Bay, a long day's pull from the swamp of
Love Creek, was the old plantation home of a
friend of my boyhood, Mr. Taylor, who about
thistime was looking out for the arrival of the
paper canoe. It was a question whether I could
descend Love Creek three miles, cross Rehoboth
and Indian River sounds, ascend White's Creek,
make a portage to Little Assawaman Bay, thread
122 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the thoroughfare west of Fenwick's Island Light,


cross the Isle of Wight Bay, ascend and cross St.
Martin's River to Turval's Creek, and reach the
home of my friend, all in one day. But I deter-
mined to attempt the task. Mr. Webb roused his
family at an early hour, and I rowed down Love
Creek and crossed the shallow waters of Reho-
both Bay in the early part of the day.
From Cape Henlopen, following the general
contour of the coast, to Cape Charles at the
northern entrance of Chesapeake Bay, is a dis-
tance of one hundred and thirty-six miles; from
Cape Charles across the mouth of Chesapeake
Bay to Cape Henry is thirteen miles; from
Henlopen south, the state of Delaware occupies
about twenty miles of the coast; the eastern
shore of Maryland holds between thirty and
forty miles, while the eastern shore of Virginia,
represented by the counties of Accomac and
Northampton, covers the peninsula to Cape
Charles.
Commencing at Rehoboth Bay, a small boat
may follow the interior waters to the Chesapeake
Bay. The watercourses of this coast are pro-
tected from the rough waves of the ocean by
long, narrow, sandy islands, known as beaches,
between which the tides enter. These passages
from the sea to the interior waters are called
inlets, and most of them are navigable for coast-

ing vessels of light draught. These inlets are so


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 123

influenced by the action of storms, and their


shores and locations are so changed by them,
that the cattle may graze to-day in tranquil happi-
ness where only a generation ago the old skipper
navigated his craft. During June of the year
1821 a fierce gale opened Sandy Point Inlet with
a foot depth of water, but it closed in 1831.
Green Point Inlet was cut through the beach
during a gale in 1837, and was closed up seven
years later. Old Sinepuxent Inlet, which was
forced open by the sea more than sixty years
ago, closed in 1831. These three inlets were
within a space of three miles, and were all north
of Chincoteague village. Green Run Inlet,
which had a depth of about six feet of water for

nearly ten years, also closed after shifting half a


mile to the south of its original location. The
tendency of inlets on this coast is to shift to the
southward, as do the inlets on the coast of New
Jersey.
Oystermen, fishermen, and farmers live along
the upland, and in some cases on the island
beaches. From these bays, timber, firewood,
grain, and oysters are shipped to northern ports.
The people are everywhere kind and hospitable
to strangers. A mild climate, cheap and easily
worked soils, wild-fowl shooting, fine oysters and
fishing privileges, offer inducements to North-
erners and Europeans to settle in this -country ;
the mild form of ague which exists in most
124 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

of its localities being the only objection. While


debating this point with a native, he attacked my
argument by saying:
"Law sakes! don't folks die of something,

any way? If you don't have fever 'n' ague round


Massachusetts, you've got an awful lot of things
we hain't got here a tarnashun sight wuss ones,
too; sich as cumsempsun, brown-critters, mental
spinageetis, lung-disease, and all sorts of brown-
kill disorders. Besides, you have such awful
cold winters that a farmer has to stay holed four
months out of the year, while w e folks in the r

south can work most of the time out of doors.


I'll be dog-goned if I hadn't ruther live here in
poverty than die up north a-rolling in riches.
Now, stranger, as to what you said about sick-
ness, why we aren't no circumstance to you fel-
lows up north. Why, your hull country is chuck-
full of pizenous remedies. When I was a-coast-
ing along Yankeedom and went ashore, I found
all the rocks along the road were jist kivered

with quack-medicine notices, and all the farmers


hired out the outsides of their barns to advertise
doctor's stuff on."
In no portion of America do the people seem
to feel the burden of earning a livelihood more
lightly. They get a great deal of social enjoy-
ment out of life at very little and place
cost,
" "
much less value on the mighty dollar than do
their brother farmers of the northern section of
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 125

the states. The interesting inquiry of "Who was


his father?" commences at Philadelphia, and its
importance intensifies as you travel southward.
Old family associations have great weight among
all classes.

It was from the mouth of Love Creek


six miles
across the sound to Burton's marshy island
little

at the entrance of Indian River Sound. Indian


River supplies its bay with much of its fresh
water, and the small inlet in the beach of the
same name with the salt water of the ocean.
Large flocks of geese and ducks were seen upon
the quiet waters of the sound. Pursuing my
southward course across Indian River Sound
three miles, I entered a small creek with a wide
mouth, which flows north from the cedar swamp,
known as White's Creek, which I ascended until
the stream became so narrow that it seemed
almost lost the wilderness, when suddenly
in
an opening in the forest showed me a clearing
with the little buildings of a farm scattered
around. It was the home of a Methodist ex-

horter, Mr.Silas J. Betts. I told him how anx-

ious I was to make a quick portage to the


nearest southern water, Little Assawaman Bay,
not much more than three miles distant by road.
After calmly examining my boat, he said: "It
is now half-past eleven o'clock. Wife has dinner
about ready. I'll
hurry her up a little, and while
she is
putting it on the table we will get the cart
126 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

ready." The cart was soon loaded with pine


needles as a bed for the canoe. We
lashed her
into a firm position with cords, and went in to
dinner.
In a short time after, we were rattling over a
level, wooded country diversified here and there
by a little farm. The shallow bay, the east side
of which was separated from the ocean by sandy
hills, was bounded by marshes. We drove close
to the water and put the Maria Theresa once
more into her true element. A friendly shake
of the hand as I paid the conscientious man his
charge of one dollar for his services, with many
thanks for his hospitality, for which he would
accept nothing and the canoe was off, threading
the narrow and very shallow channel-way of this

grassy-bottomed bay.
The tall tower of Fenwick's Island Light,
located on the boundary line of Delaware and
Maryland, was now my landmark. It rises out
of the low land that forms a barrier against
which the sea breaks. The people on the coast
pronounce Fenwick "Phoenix." Phcenix Island,
they say, was once a part of the mainland, but a
woman, wishing to keep her cattle from stray-
ing, gave a man a shirt Tor digging a narrow
ditch between Little and Great Assawaman

bays. The tide ebbed and flowed so strongly


through this new channel-way that it was worn
to more than a hundred feet in width, and has
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 127

at high tide a depth in places of from ten to fif-


teen feet of water. The opening of this new
thoroughfare so diminished the flow of water
through the Little Assawaman Inlet to the sea,
that it became closed. The water was almost
fresh here, as the nearest inlet which admits salt
water at high tide is^ at Chincoteague Island,
some fifty miles distant.

Passing to the west of the light-house through


this passage, I
thought of what a woman could
do, and almost expected to hear from the rippling
waters the "Song of the Shirt," which would
have been in this case a much more cheerful
one than Hood's. I now entered Great Assa-
waman Bay, the waters of which lay like a mir-
ror before me; and nearly five miles away, to the
southwestern end, the tall forests of the Isle of
Wight loomed up against the setting sun. Ducks
rose in flocks from the quiet waters as my canoe
glided into their close vicinity. If I could have
taken less cargo, I should have carried a light
gun; but this being impossible, a pocket re-
volver was my only fire-arm: so the ducks and
other wild-fowl along my route had reason to
hold the paper canoe in grateful remembrance.
Upon reaching the shores of the Isle of Wight
I entered the mouth of St. Martin's River, which
is, at its confluence with Isle of Wight Bay, more
than two miles wide. I did not then possess the
fine Coast Chart No. 28, or the General Chart
128 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

of the Coast, No. 4, with the topography of the


land clearly delineated, and showing every man's
farm-buildings, fields, landings, &c., so plainly
located as to make it easy for even a novice to
navigate these bays. Now, being chartless so
far as these waters were concerned, I peered
about in the deepening twilight for my friend's

plantation buildings, which I knew were not far


off; but the gloomy forests of pine upon the up-
land opened not the desired vista I so longed
to find.

Crossing the wide river, I came upon a long


point of salt-marsh, which I hoped might be
Keyser's Point, for I knew that to the west of
this point I should find Turval's Creek. While
rowing along the marsh I came upon two duck-
shooters in their punt, but so enveloped were
the) in the mist that it was impossible to do
7

more than define their forms. I, however, ven-


tured a question as to my locality, when, to my
utter astonishment, there came back to me in
clear accents my own name. Never before had
it sounded so sweet to my ears. It was the

voice of my friend, who


with a companion
was occupied in removing from the water the
flock of decoys which they had been guard-

ing since sunrise. Joyful was the unexpected


meeting.
We rowed
around Keyser's Point, and up Tur-
vaFs Creek, a couple of miles to the plantation
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 129

landing. Here, upon the old estate in the little


"
family burial-ground, slept, each in his narrow
cell," the children of four generations. Our con-
versation before the blazing wood-fire that night
related to the ground travelled over during the day,
a course of about thirty-five miles. Mr. Taylor's
father mentioned that a friend, during one week
in theprevious September, had taken upon his
hook, while fishing from the marshes of Reho-
both Bay, five hundred rock-fish, some of which
weighed twenty pounds. The oysters in Reho-
both and Indian River bays had died out,
probably from the decrease in the amount of
salt water now
entering them. A
delightful
week was spent with my friends at Winchester
Plantation, when the falling of the mercury
warned me to hurry southward.
On Wednesday, November 25, I descended
the plantation creek and rowed out of St. Mar-
tin's River into the Bay. My course southward
led me
past "the Hommack," an Indian mound
of oyster-shells, which rises about seven feet
above the marsh on the west side of the entrance
to Sinepuxent bay, and where the mainland

approaches to within eight hundred feet of the


beach. This point, which divides the Isle of
Wight Bay from Sinepuxent, is the terminus of
the Wicomico and Pocomoke Railroad, which
has been extended from Berlin eastwardly seven
miles. A short ferry conveys the passengers
9
I3O VOYAGE OP THE PAPER CANOE,

across the water to a narrow island beach, which


is considered by Bayard Taylor, the author, the

finest beach he has ever This


visited. new
watering-place is called Ocean City; and
my
friend, B. Jones Taylor, was treasurer of the
company which was engaged in making the
much-desired improvements. The shallow bays
in the vicinity of Ocean City offer safe and pleas-
ant sailing-grounds. The summer fishing con-
sists chiefly of white perch, striped bass, sheep's-

head, weak-fish, and drum. In the fall, bluefish


are caught. All of these, with oysters, soft
crabs, and diamond-backed terrapin, offer tempt-
ing dishes to the epicure. This recently isolated
shore is now within direct railroad communica-
tion with Philadelphia and New
York, and can
be reached in nine hours from the former, and
in twelve hours from the latter city.
From the Hommack to South Point is included
the length of Sinepuxent Bay, according to Coast
Survey authority. From South Point to below
the middle of Chincoteague Island the bay is
put down as "Assateague," though the oystermen
do not call it by that name. The celebrated
oyster-beds of the people of Chincoteague com-
mence about twenty miles south of the Horn-
mack. There are two kinds of oysters shipped
from Chincoteague Inlet to New York and
other markets. One is the long native plant ;

the other, that transplanted from Chesapeake


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 131

Bay: this bivalve is rounded in form, and the


most prized of the two. The average width of
Sinepuxent was only a mile. When I turned
westwardly around South Point, and entered
Assateague Bay, the watery expanse widened,
between the marshes on the west and the sandy-
beach island on the east, to over four miles.
The debouchure of Newport Creek is to the
west of South Point. The marshes here are
very wide. I ascended it in the afternoon to

visit Dr. F. J. Purnell, whose attempts to intro-


duce the pinnated grouse and California par-
tridges on his plantation had attracted the atten-
"
tion of Mr. Charles Hallock, editor of Forest
and Stream"; and I had promised him, if possi-
ble, to investigate the matter. This South Point
of Sinepuxent Neck is a place of historical in-
terest, it
being now asserted that it is the burial-

place of Edward Whalley, the regicide.

Early Mr. Robert P. Robins found in a


in 1875,
bundle of old family documents a paper containing
interesting statements written by his great-great-

grandfather, Thomas Robins, 3d, of South Point,


Worcester County, Maryland, and dated July 8,
1769. We gather from this reliable source that
Edward Whalley left Connecticut and arrived in
Virginia in 16 and was there met by a portion
,

of his family. From Virginia he travelled to


"
the province of Maryland, and settled first at

ye mouth of ye Pokemoke River; and finding


132 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

yt too publick a place he came to Sinepuxent, a


neck of land open to ye Atlantic Ocean, where
Colonel Stephen was surveying and bought a
tract of land from him and called it Genezar; it
contained two thousand two hundred acres, south
end of Sinepuxent; and made a settlement on ye
southern extremity, and called South Point; to
it

ye which place he brought his family about 1687,


in ye name of Edward Middleton. His own name
he made not publick until after this date, after ye
revolution in England, (in ye year of our Lord

1688,) when he let his name be seen in publick


papers, and had ye lands patented in his own
name."
The writer of the above quotation was the
great-grandson of Edward Whalley (alias Edward
Middleton), the celebrated regicide.
Four miles from South Point I struck the
marshes which skirted Dr. Purnell's large plan-
tation, and pushing the canoe up a narrow branch
of the creek, I waded through
the partially sub-

merged herbage to the firm ground, where the


doctor was awaiting me. His house was close
at hand, within the hospitable walls of which I
passed the night. Dr. Purnell has an estate of
one thousand five hundred acres, lying along the
banks of Newport Creek. Since the civil war it
has been worked by tenants. Much of it is
woodland and salt-marshes. Five years before
my visit, a Philadelphian sent the doctor a few
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 133

and a covey of both the


pairs of prairie-chickens,
and the mountain partridge. I am now
valley
using popular terms. The grouse were from a
western state; the partridges had been obtained
from California. The partridges were kept caged
for several weeks and were then set at liberty.

They soon disappeared in the woods, with the


exception of a single pair, which returned daily
to the kitchen-door of a farm tenant to obtain
food. These two birds nested in the garden
close to the house, and reared a fine brood of

young; but the whole covey wandered away, and


were afterwards heard from but once. They
had crossed to the opposite side of Newport
Creek, and were probably shot by gunners.
The prairie-chickens adapted themselves to
their new home in a satisfactory manner, and
became very tame. Their nests, well filled with
eggs, were found along the rail-fences of the fields
in the close vicinity of the marshes, for which
level tracts they seemed to have strong attach-
ment. Theymultiplied rapidly, and visited the
cattle-pens and barn-yards of the plantation.
The Maryland legislature passed a law to pro-
tect all grouse introduced into the state; but a
new danger threatened these unfortunate birds.
A crew of New Jersey terrapin-hunters entered
Chincoteague Inlet, and searched the ditches and
little creeks of the salt-marshes for the
"
diamond-
backs." While thus engaged, the gentle grouse,
134 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

feeding quietly in the vicinity, attracted theii

attention, and they at once bagged most of them.


A tenant on the estate informed me that he had
seen eighteen birds in a cornfield a few days be-
fore the remnant of the stock.
The Ruffled Grouse {Bonasa umbellus^^ so
abundant in New Jersey, is not a resident of the
peninsula. Dr. Purnell's first experiment with
the Pinnated Grouse {Cupidonia cupido) has
encouraged others to bring the ruffled grouse to
the eastern shore of Maryland. That unapproach-
able songster of the south, the American Mock-
ing-bird {Mimus polyglottits), is becoming
scarce in this region, from the inroads made by
bird-catchers who ship the young to northern
cities. This delightful chorister is only an acci-
dental visitor in the New England states. In-

deed, as far south as Ocean Count}*, New Jersey,


I saw but one of these birds, in a residence of

nine years on my cranberry plantations;


though I
have heard that their nests are occasionally found
about Cape May, at the extreme southern end of
New Jersey.
My time being could enjoy the doc-
limited, I

tor's hospitality for but one night. The next


morning the whole family, with tenants both
black and white, assisted me to embark. By
dusk I had crossed the division line of two states,
and had entered Virginia near the head of Chin-
coteague Island, a locality of peculiar interest to
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 135

the student of American character. The ebb-


tidehad left but little water around the rough pier
abreast of the town, and heaps of oyster-shells
rose from the mud flats and threatened the
safety of my canoe. I looked up through the
darkness to the light pier-head above me, and
called for assistance. Two men leaned over to
inquire,"What's the row now, stranger?" To
"
which I
replied, I wish to land a
light boat on
your pier; and as it is made of paper, it should
be carefully handled." For a moment the oys-
termen observed a silence, and then, without one
word of explanation, disappeared. I heard their
heavy boots tramping up the quay towards the
tavern. Soon a low murmur arose on the night
air, then hoarse shouts, and there came thunder-

ing down the wharf an army of men and boys.


"Pass her up, stranger!" they cried. "Here,
give us your bow and starn painters, and jest
step overboard yourself, and we'll hist her up."
Some of the motley crew caught me by the
"
shoulders, others histed away," and 'the canoe
and its captain were laid roughly upon the
ground.
There was a rush to feel of the paper shell.
Many were convinced that there was no humbug
about it;with a great shout, some of the men
so,
tossed upon their shoulders, while the rest
it

seized upon the miscellaneous cargo, and a rush


was made for the hotel, leaving me to follow at
136 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

discretion and alone. The procession burst open


the doors of the tavern, and poured through
the entrance to a court-yard, where they laid
the boat upon a long table under a shed, and
"
thought they had earned drinks." This was the
spontaneous way in which the Chincoteague peo-
"
ple welcomed me. If you don't drink, stranger,

up your way, what on airth keeps your buddies


"
and soulds together? queried a tall oysterman.
A lady had kindly presented me with a peck of fine
"
apples that very morning; so, in lieu of drinks,"
I distributed the fruit
among them. They joked
and questioned me, and all were merry save one
bilious-looking individual, not dressed, like the
others, in an oysterman's garb, but wearing, to
use a term of the place, " store clothes."
After the crowd had settled in the bar-room,
at cards, &c., this doubting Thomas remained
beside the boat, carefully examining her. Soon
he was scraping her hull below the gunwale,
where the muddy water of the bay had left a
thin coat of sediment which was now dry. The
man's countenance lighted up as he pulled the
bartender aside and said, "Look ahere; didn't
I tell you that boat looked as if she was made to

carry on a deck of a vessel, and to be a-shoved off


into the water at night jest abreast of a town to
make fools of folks, and git them to believe that
that fellow had a-rowed all way ahere?
the
Now see, here is dust, dry dust, on her hull.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 137

She ahain't ben water mor'n ten minutes,


in the
I sware." It required but a moment's
investiga-
tion of my Chincoteague audience to discover
that the dust was mud from the tide, and the
doubter brought down the ridicule of his more
discriminating neighbors upon him, and slunk
away amid their jeers.
Of all this community of watermen but one
could be found that night who had threaded the
interior watercourses as far as Cape Charles, and
he was the youngest of the lot. Taking out my
note-book, I jotted down his amusing directions.
"
Look out for Cat Creek below Four Mouths,"
:?
he said; "you'll catch it round there." Yes,"
broke in several voices, "Cat Creek's an awful
place unless you run through on a full ebb-tide.
Oyster boats always has a time a-shoving through
Cat Creek," &c.
After the council with
my Chincoteague
friends had ended, the route to be travelled the
next day was in my mental vision " as clear as
mud." The inhabitants of this island are not all
oystermen, for many find occupation and profit
in raising ponies upon the beach of Assateague,
where the wild, coarse grass furnishes them a
livelihood. These hardy little animals are called
"Marsh Tackies," and are found at intervals
along the beaches down to the sea-islands of the
Carolinas. They hold at Chincoteague an annual
"
fair, to which all the pony-penners," as they
138 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

are called, bring their surplus animals to sell.


The average price is about ninety dollars for a
good beast, though some have sold for two hun-
dred and fifty dollars. All these horses are sold
in a semi-wild and unbroken state.
The following morning Mr. J. L. Caulk, ex-
collector of the oyster port, and about fifty per-
sons, escorted me to the landing, and sent me
"
away with a hearty Good luck to ye."
It was three miles and three quarters to the

southern end of the island, which has an inlet


from the ocean upon each side of that end the
northern one being Assateague, the southern one
Chincoteague Inlet. Fortunately, I crossed the
latter smooth water to Ballast Narrows in
in
the marshes, and soon reached Four Mouths,
where I found five mouths of thoroughfares, and
became perplexed, for had not the pilots of
Chincoteague called this interesting display of
"
mouths Four Mouths"? I clung to the authority
of local knowledge, however, and was soon in a
labyrinth of creeks which ended in the marshes
near the beach.
Returning over the course, I once more faced
the four, or five mouths rather, and taking a new
departure by entering the next mouth to the one
I had so unsatisfactorily explored, soon entered
Rogue's Bay, across which could be seen the
entrance to Cat Creek, where I was to expe-
rience the difficulties predicted by my Chinco-
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 139

teague
O friends. Cat Creek furnished at half tide
sufficient water for my canoe, and not the slight-
est difficulty was experienced in getting through
it. The oystermen had in their minds their own

sloop-rigged oyster-boats when they discoursed


to me about the hard passage of Cat Creek.

They had not considered the fact that my craft


drew only five inches of water.
Cat Creek took me quite down to the beach,

where, through an inlet, the dark-blue ocean,


sparkling in its white caps, came pleasantly into
view. Another inlet was to be crossed, and
again was favored with smooth water. This
I

was Assawaman Inlet, which divided the beach


into two islands Wallops on the north, and
Assawaman on the south.
It seemed a singular fact that the two Assa-

waman bays are forty-five miles to the north of an


inlet of the same name. In following the creeks
through the marshes between Assawaman Island
and the mainland, I crossed another shoal bay,
and another inlet opened in the beach, through
which the ocean was again seen. This last was
Gargathy Inlet. Before reaching it, as night was
coming on, I turned up a thoroughfare and rowed
some distance to the mainland, where I found
lodgings with a hospitable farmer, Mr. Martin R.
Kelly. At daybreak I crossed Gargathy Inlet.
was now Saturday, November 28; and being
It

encouraged by the successful crossing of the in-


140 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

lets in tiny craft, I pushed on to try the less


my
inviting one at the end of Matomkin Island.
Fine weather favored me, and I pushed across
the strong tide that swept through this inlet
without shipping a sea. Assawaman and Gar-
gathy are constantly shifting their channels. At
times there will be six feet of water, and again
they will shoal to two feet. Matomkin, also, is
not to be relied on. Every northeaster will shift
a buoy placed in the channels of these three in-
lets, so they are not buoyed.

Watchapreague Inlet, to the south of the three


last named, is less changeable in character, and
is much more dangerous inlet to cross in
also a

rough weather. From Matomkin Inlet the inte-


rior thoroughfares were followed inside of Cedar
Island, when darkness forced me to seek shelter
with Captain William F. Burton, whose comfort-
able home was on the shore of the mainland,
about five from Watchapreague Inlet.
miles
Here I was kindly invited to spend Sunday.
Captain Burton told me much of interest, and
among other things mentioned the fact that dur-
ing one August, a few years before my visit, a
large lobster was taken on a fish-hook in Watch-
apreague Inlet, and that a smaller one was cap-
tured in the same manner during the summer
of 1874.
Monday was a gusty day. canoe scraped
My
its keel upon the shoals as I dodged the broken
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 14!

"
oyster reefs, called here oyster rocks," while on
the passage down to Watchapreague Inlet. The
tide was very low, but the water deepened as
the beach was approached. A. northeaster was

blowing freshly, and I was looking for a lee


under the beach, when suddenly the canoe shot
around a sandy point, and was tugging for life in
the rough waters of the inlet. The tide was run-
ning in from the sea with the force of a rapid,
and the short, quick puffs of wind tossed the
waves wildly. It was useless to attempt to turn
the canoe back to the beach in such rough water,
but, intent on keeping the boat above the caps, I
gave her all the momentum that muscular power
could exert, as she was headed for the southern
point of the beach, across the dangerous inlet.
Though it was only half a mile across, the
passage of Watchapreague taxed me severely.
Waves washed over my canoe, but the gallant
little craft after each rebuff rose like a bird to

the surface of the water, answering the slightest


touch of my oar better than the best-trained
steed. After entering the south-side swash, the
wind struck me on the back, and seas came tum-
bling over and around the boat, fairly forcing me
on to the beach. As we flew along, the tumult-
uous waters made my head swim; so, to pre-
vent mental confusion, I kept my eyes only upon
the oars, which, strange to say, never betrayed
me into a false stroke.
142 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

As heavy blast beat down the raging sea for


a
a moment, I looked over my shoulder and be-
held the low, sandy dunes of the southern shore
of the inlet close at hand, and with a severe jolt
the canoe grounded high on the strand. I

leaped out and drew my precious craft away


from the tide, breathing a prayer of thankfulness
for my escape from danger, and mentally vowing
that the canoe should cross all other treacherous
inlets in a fisherman's sloop. I went into camp
in a hollow of the beach, where the sand-hills

protected me
from the piercing wind. All that
afternoon I watched from my burrow in the

ground the raging of the elements, and towards


evening was pleased to note a general subsidence
of wind and sea.
The canoe was again put into the water and
the thoroughfare followed southward for a mile
or two, when the short day ended, leaving me
beside a marshy island, which was fringed with
an oyster-bed of sharp-beaked bivalves. Step-
ping overboard in the mud and water, the oars
and paddle were laid upon the shell reef to pro-
tect the canoe, which was dragged on to the
marsh. It grew colder .as the wind died out.
The marsh was wet, and no fire-wood could be
found. The canvas cover was removed, the cargo
was piled up on a platform of oars and shells to
secure it from the next tide, and then I slowly

and laboriously packed myself away in the nar-


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 143

row shell for the night. The canvas deck-cover


was buttoned in its place, a rubber blanket cov-
ered the cockpit, and I tried to sleep and dream
that I was not a sardine, nor securely confined in
some inhospitable vault. It was impossible to
turn over without unbuttoning one side of the
deck-cover and going through contortions that
would have done credit to a first-class acrobat.
For the first time in my life I found it necessary
to get out of bed in order to turn over in it.
At midnight, mallards {Anas boschas) came
close to the marsh. The soft ijuhagh of the
drake, which is not in this species blessed with
the loud quack of the female bird, sufficiently
established the identity of the duck. Then
muskrats, and the oyster-eating coon, came
round, no doubt scenting my provisions. Brisk
raps from my knuckles on the inside shell of the
canoe astonished these animals and aroused their
curiosity, for they annoyed me until daybreak.
When I emerged from mynarrow bed, the
frosty air struck my cheeks, and the cold, wet
marsh chilled my feet. It was the delay at

Watchapreague Inlet that had lodged me on this

inhospitable marsh; so, trying my to exercise


poor stock of patience, I completed my toilet,

shaking in my wet shoes. The icy water, into


which stepped ankle-deep in order to launch
I

my canoe, reminded me that this wintry morning


was in fact the first day of December, and that
144 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

stormy Hatteras, south of which was to be found


a milder climate, was still a long way off.
The brisk row along Paramore's Island (called
Palmer's by the natives) to the wide, bay-like
entrance of Little Machipongo Inlet, restored
warmth to my benumbed limbs. This wide
doorway of the ocean permitted me to cross its
west portal in peace, for the day was calm.
From Little to Great Machipongo Inlet the
beach is called Hog Island. The inside thor-

oughfare bounded on the west by Rogue's


is

Island, out of the flats of which rose a solitary


house. At the southern end of Hog Island
there is a small store on a creek, and near the

beach a light-house, while a little inland is lo-


cated, within a forest of pines, a small settle-
ment.
At noon, Great Machipongo Inlet was crossed
without danger, and Cobb's Island was skirted
several miles to Sand Shoal Inlet, near which
the hotel of the three Cobb brothers rose

cheerfully out of the dreary waste of sands and


marshes. The father of the present proprietors
came to this island more than thirty years ago,
and took possession of this domain, which had
been thrown up by the action of the ocean's
waves. He refused an offer of one hundred
thousand dollars for the island. The locality is
one of the best on this coast for wild-fowl shoot-
ing. Sand Shoal Inlet, at the southern end of
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 145

Cobb's Island, has a depth of twelve feet of


water on its bar at low tide.
In company with the regular row-boat ferry I
crossed, the next day, the broad bay to the main-
land eight miles distant, where the canoe was
put upon a cart and taken across the peninsula
five miles to Cherrystone, the only point near
Cape Charles at which a Norfolk steamer stopped
for passengers. It was fully forty miles across

Chesapeake Bay from Cherrystone Landing to


Norfolk, and it was imperative to make the port-
age from this place instead of from Cape Charles,
which, though more than fifteen miles further
south, and nearer to my starting-point on the
other side, did not possess facilities for transpor-
tation. The slow one-horse conveyance arrived
at Cherrystone half an hour after the steamer
N. P. Banks had left the landing, though I
heard that the kind-hearted captain, being told
I was coming, waited and whistled for me till

his patience was exhausted.


The only house at the head of the pier was
owned by Mr. J. P. Powers, and fortunately
offered hotel accommodations. Here I remained
until the next trip of the boat, December 4. Ar-
riving in Norfolk at dusk of the same day, I
stored my canoe in the warehouse of the Old
Dominion Steamship Company, and quietly re-
tired to an hotel which promised an early meal
in the morning, congratulating myself the while

10
146 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

that had avoided the usual show of curiosity


I

tendered to canoeists at city piers, and above all


had escaped the inevitable reporter. Alas! my
thankfulness came too soon; for when about to
retire, my name was called, and a veritable
reporter from the Norfolk Landmark cut off
my retreat.
"
Only a few words," he pleadingly whis-
pered. "I've been hunting for you all over the

city since seven o'clock, and it is near midnight


now."
He gently took my arm and politely furnished
me with a chair. Then placing his own directly
before me, he insinuatingly worked upon me
until he derived a knowledge of the log of the
Paper Canoe, when leaning back in his chair he
leisurely surveyed me and exclaimed:
"
Mr. Bishop, you are a man of snap. We
like men of snap; we admire men of snap;
in fact, I may say we cotton to men of snap, and
J am proud to make your acquaintance. Now
ifyou will stop over a day we will have the
whole city out to see your boat."
This kind offer I firmly refused, and we were
about to part, when he said in a softly rebuking
manner:
:c
You thought, Mr. Bishop, } ou would give us
r

the slip did you not? I assure you that would

be quite impossible. Eternal Vigilance is our


motto. No, you could not escape us. Good
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 147

evening, sir, and the f


Landmark's '
welcome to

you."
Six hours later, as I entered the restaurant of
the hotel with my eyes half open, a newsboy
bawled out in the darkness: "'Ere's the ? Land-
mark.' Full account of the Paper Canoe," &c.
And before the sun was up I had read a column
and a half of " The Arrival of the Solitary Voy-
ager in Norfolk." So much for the zeal of Mr.
Perkins of the " Landmark," a worthy example
of American newspaper enterprise. Dreading
further attentions, I now prepared to beat a hasty
retreat from the city.

J)ELAWARE ^HIPPING-POST AND PILLORY


148 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

CHAPTER IX.

FROM NORFOLK TO CAPE HATTERAS.

THE ELIZABETH RIVER. THE CANAL. NORTH LANDING RIVER.


CURRITUCK SOUND. ROANOKE ISLAND. VISIT TO BODY
ISLAND LIGHT-HOUSE. A ROMANCE OF HISTORY. PAMPLICO
SOUND. THE PAPER CANOE ARRIVES AT CAPE HATTERAS.

Saturday morning, December 5, I left the


ON pier of the Old Dominion Steamship Com-
pany, Norfolk, Virginia, and, rowing across the
at
water towards Portsmouth, commenced ascend-
ing Elizabeth River, which is here wide and
affected by tidal change. The old navy yard,
with dismantled hulks lying at anchor in the
its

stream, occupies both banks of the river. About


six miles from Norfolk the entrance to the Dis-
mal Swamp Canal is reached, on the left bank
of the river. This old canal runs through the
Great Dismal Swamp, and affords passage for
steamers and light-draught vessels to Elizabeth
City, on the Pasquotank River, which empties
into Albemarle Sound to the southward. The
great cypress and juniper timber is penetrated by
this canal, and schooners are towed into the
t' I \if>ef-( //!/

MARIA THERESA
From Norfolh^Va.to Bogiie Inlet, If.
byNlH.Bislio^
/i 7,774
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 149

swamp to landings where their cargoes are de-


livered.
In the interior of the Dismal Swamp is Drum-
mond's Lake, named after its discoverer. It is
seven miles long by five miles wide, and is the
feeder of the canal. A branch canal connects it
with the main canal; and small vessels may
traverse the lake in search of timber and shingles.

Voyagers tell me that during heavy gales of


wind a terrible sea is set in motion upon this
shoal sheet of water, making it dangerous to

navigate. Bears are found in the fastnesses of


the swamp. The Dismal Swamp Canal was dug
in the olddays of the wheelbarrow and spade.
The Albemarle and Chesapeake Canal, the en-
trance to which is sixteen miles from Norfolk,
on the right or east bank of the Elizabeth River,
and generally known as the " new canal," was
commenced about the year 1856, and finished in
1859. It is eight miles and a half in length,

and connects the Elizabeth and North Landing


rivers. This canal was dug by dredging-ma-
chines. It is kept in a much better state for

navigation, so far as the depth of water is con-


cerned, than the old canal, which from inatten-
tion is gradually shoaling in places; consequently
the regular steam-packets which ply between
Elizabeth City and Norfolk, as well as steamers
whose destinations are further north, have given

up the use of the Dismal Swamp Canal, and


150 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

now go round through Albemarle Sound up the


North River, thence by a six-mile cut into Cur-
rituck Sound, up North Landing River, and

through the new canal to the Elizabeth River


and into Chesapeake Bay. The shores of the
Elizabeth are low and are fringed by sedgy
marshes, while forests of second-growth pine
present a green background to the eye. A
few
miles above Norfolk the cultivation of land
ceases, and the canoeist traverses a wilderness.
About noon I arrived at the locks of the Albe-
marle and Chesapeake Canal. The telegraph
operator greeted me with the news that the com-
pany's agent in Norfolk had telegraphed to the
lock-master to pass the paper canoe through with
the freedom of the canal the first honor of the
kind that had fallen to my lot. The tide rises
and falls at the locks in the river about three feet
and a half. When I passed through, the differ-
ence in the level between the ends of the locks
did not reach two feet. The old lock-master
urged me to give up the journey at once, as I
never could "get through the Sounds with that
little boat." When I told him I was on my
second thousand miles of canoe navigation since
leaving Quebec, he drew a long breath and
gave a low groan.
When once through the canal-gates, you are
in a heavy cypress swamp. The dredgings
thrown upon the banks l^ave raised the edge of
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 151

the swamp to seven feet above the water. Little

pines grow along these shores, and among them


the small birds, now on their southern migrations,
sported and sang. Whenever a steamer or tug-
boat passed me, it crowded the canoe close to
the bank; but these vessels travel along the
canal at so slow a rate, that no trouble is experi-
enced by the canoeist from the disturbance
caused by their revolving screws. Freedmen,
poling flats loaded with shingles or frame stuff,
roared out their merry songs as they passed.
The canal entered the North Landing River
without any lockage; just beyond was North
Landing, from which the river takes its name.
A store and evidences of a settlement meet the

eye at a little distance. The river is tortuous,


and soon leaves the swamp behind. The pine
forest is succeeded by marshes on both sides of
the slow-flowing current.
Three miles from North Landing a single
miniature house seen; then for nearly five
is

miles along the river not a trace of the presence


of man is to be met, until Pungo Ferry and Land-
ing loom up out of the low marshes on the east
side of the river. This ferry, with a store three-

quarters of a mile from the landing, and a farm


of nearly two hundred acres, is the property of
Mr. Charles N. Dudley, a southern gentleman,
who offers every inducement in his power to
northern men to settle in his vicinity. Many of
152 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the property-holders in the uplands are willing


to sell portions of their estates to
induce north-
ern men to come among them.
It was almost dark when I reached the store-
house at Pungo Ferry; and as Sunday is a sacred
day with me, determined to camp there until
I

Monday. A
deformed negro held a lease of the
ferry, and pulled a flat back and forth across
the river by means of a chain and windlass. He
was very civil, and placed his quarters at my dis-

posal until I should be ready to start southward


to Currituck Sound. We lifted the canoe and
pushed through an open window into the little
it

store-room, where it rested upon an unoccupied


counter. The negro went up to the loft above,
and threw down two large bundles of flags for a
bed, upon which I spread my blankets. An old
stove in a corner was soon aglow with burning
light wood. While I was cooking my supper,
the little propeller Cygnet, which runs between
Norfolk and Van Slyck's Landing, at Currituck
Narrows, touched at Pungo Ferry, and put off
an old woman wr ho had been on a two years'
visit to her relatives. She kindly accosted the
"
dwarfed black with, Charles, have you got a
match for my pipe?"
:?
Yes, missus," civilly responded the negro,
handing her a light.
" "
Well, this is good! soliloquized the ancient
dame, as she seated herself on a box and puffed
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 153

away short-stemmed pipe. " Ah, good


at the
indeed to get away from city folks, with their
stuck-up manners and queer ways, a-fault-finding
when you stick your knife in your mouth in

place of your fork, and a-feeding you on China


tea in place of dear old yaupon. Charles, you
can't reckon how I longs to get a cup of good
yaupon."
As the reader is about entering a country
where the laboring classes draw largely upon
nature for their supply of "the cup that cheers
but not inebriates," I will describe the shrub
which produces it.

This substitute for the tea of China is a holly


(ilex}, and is called by the natives "yaupon"
(/. cassine, Linn.}. It is a handsome shrub,

growing a few feet in height, with alternate, per-


ennial, shining leaves, and bearing small scarlet
berries. It is found
the vicinity of salt water,
in
in the light, soils of Virginia and the Carolinas.
The leaves and twigs are dried by the women,
and when ready for market are sold at one dollar
per bushel. It is not to be compared in excel-
lence with the tea of China, nor does it approach
or good qualities the well-known yerba-
in taste

mate, another species of holly, which is found


in Paraguay, and is the common drink of the

people of South America.


The old woman
having gone on her way, and
we being again alone in the rude little shanty,
154 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the good-natured freedman told me his history,

ending with,
" O that was a glorious day for me,
When Massa Lincoln set me free."

He had too much ambition, he said, deformed as


he was, to be supported as a pauper by the pub-
"
lic. can make just about twelve dollars a
I

month by dis here ferry," he exclaimed. " I


don't want for nuffin'; I'se got no wife no
woman w ill hab me.
r
I want to support myself
and live an honest man."
About seven o'clock he left me to waddle up
the road nearly a mile to a little house.
"
I an' another cullo'd man live in partner-
ship," he said. He could not account for the
fact that I had no fear of sleeping alone in the
shanty on the marshes. He went home for the
"
company of his partner, as he didn't like to
sleep alone noways."
Though the cold wind entered through broken
window-lights and under the rudely constructed
door, I slept comfortably until morning. Before
Charles had returned, my breakfast was cooked
and eaten.
'

With the sunshine of the morning came a


new visitor. I had made the acquaintance of
the late slave; now I received a call from the
late master. My visitor was a pleasant, gentle-
manly personage, the owner of the surrounding
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 155

acres. His large white house could be seen


from the landing, a quarter of a mile up the
road.
"
I learned that a stranger from the north was
camped here, and was expecting that he would
come up and take breakfast with me," was his
kindly way of introducing himself.
I told him I was comfortably established in

dry quarters, and did not feel justified in for-

cing myself upon his hospitality while I had so

many good things of this life in my provision-


basket.
Mr. Dudley would take no excuse, but con-
ducted me to his house, where I remained that
day, attending the religious services in a little
church in the vicinity. My
kind host introduced
me to his neighbors, several of whom returned
with us to dinner. found the people about
I

Pungo Ferry, like those I had met along the


sounds of the eastern shore of Maryland and
Virginia, very piously inclined, the same kind-
hearted, hospitable people.
My host entertained me the next day, which
was rainy, with his life in the Confederate army,
in which he served as a lieutenant. He was a
prisoner atJohnson's Island for twenty-two
months. He bore no malice towards northern
men who came south to join with the natives in
working for the true interests of the country.
The people of the south had become weary of
156 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

political sufferings inflictedby a floating popula-


tion from the north* they needed actual settlers,
not politicians. This sentiment I found every-
where expressed. On Tuesday I bade farewell
to my new friends, and rowed down the North
Landing River towards Currituck Sound.
The North Carolina line is only a few miles
south of the ferry. The river enters the head
of the sound six or eight miles below Pungo
Ferry. A stiff northerly breeze was blowing,
and as the river widened, on reaching the head
of the sound, to a mile or more, and bays were
to be crossed from point to point, it required
the exercise of considerable patience and mus-
cular exertion to keep the sea from boarding
the little craft amidship. As I was endeavoring
to weather a point, the swivel of one of the out-
riggers parted at its junction with the row-lock,
and it became necessary to get under the south
point of the marshes for shelter.
The lee side offered a smooth bay. It was
but a few minutes' work to unload and haul the
canoe into the rushes, which afforded ample
tall

It was three
protection against the cold wind.
hours before the wind went down, when the
canoe was launched, and, propelled by the double
paddle, (always kept in reserve against accidents
to oars and row-locks,) I continued over the
waters of Currituck Sound.
Swans could now be seen in flocks of twenties
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 157

and fifties. They were exceedingly wary, not


permitting the canoe to approach within rifle

range. Clouds of ducks, and some Canada


geese, as well as brant, kept up a continuous
flutter as they rose from the surface of the water.

Away extended the glimmering


to the southeast
bosom of the sound, with a few islands relieving
its monotony. The three or four houses and two
small storehouses at the landing of Currituck
Court House, which, with the brick court-house,
comprise the whole village, are situated on the
west bank; and opposite, eight miles to the east-
ward, is the narrow beach island that serves as
a barrier to the ingress of the ocean.
At sunset I started the last flock of white
swans, and grounded in the shoal waters at the
landing. There is no regular hotel here, but a
kind lady, Mrs. Simmons, accommodates the
necessities of the occasional traveller. The ca-
noe was soon locked up in the landing-house.
Fortunately a blacksmith was found outside the
village, who promised to repair the broken row-
lock early upon the following morning. Before
a pleasant wood fire giving out its heat from a

grand old fireplace, with an agreeable visitor,


the physician of the place, the tediousness of
the three-hours' camp on the marshes was soon
forgotten, while the country and its resources
were fully discussed until a late hour.
Dr. Baxter had experimented in grape culture,
158 VOYAGE 'OF THE PAPER CANOE.

and gave me many interesting details in regard


to the native wine. In 1714, Lawson described
six varieties of native grapes found in North
Carolina. Our three finest varieties of native

grapes were taken from North Carolina. They


are the Scuppernong, the Catawba, and the Isa-
bella. The Scuppernong was found upon the
banks of the stream bearing that name, the
mouth of which is near the eastern end of Albe-
marle Sound. The Catawba was originally ob-
tained on the Catawba River, near its head-waters
in Buncombe County. The Long Island stock
of the Isabella grape was brought to New York
by Mrs. Isabella Gibbs: hence the derivation of
the name.
Of the six varieties of North Carolina grapes,
five were found Tyrrel County by Amadas
in
and Barlow. Tradition relates that these trav-
ellers carried one small vine to Roanoke Island,
which still lives and covers an immense area of

ground. There are five varieties of the grape

growing wild on the shores of Albemarle Sound,


all of which are called Scuppernong, the legit-
imate Scuppernong being a white grape, sweet
and large, and producing a wine said to resemble
somewhat in its luscious flavor the Malmsey
made on Mount Ida, in Candia.
The repairing of the outrigger detained me
until nearly noon of the next day, when the
canoe was got under way; but upon rowing off
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 159

the mouth of Coanjock Bay, only four miles from


Currituck Court House, a strong tempest arose
from the south, and observing an old gentle-
man standing upon Bell Island Point, near his
cottage, beckoning me to come ashore, I obeyed,
and took refuge with my new acquaintance, Cap-
tain Peter L. Tatum, proprietor of Bell Island.
T
The war has left us without servants," said
"
the captain, as he presented me to his wife, so
we make the best of it, and if you 'will accept
our hospitality we will make you comfortable."
Captain Tatum drew my attention to the flocks
of swans which dotted the waters in the offing,
and said: " It is hard work to get hold of a swan,
though they are a large bird, and abundant in
Currituck Sound. You must use a good rifle
to bring one down. After a strong norther has
been blowing, and the birds have worked well
into the bight of the bay, near Goose Castle Point,
if the wind shifts to the south
suddenly, gunners
approach from the outside, and the birds becom-
ing cramped in the cove are shot as they rise
agairtst the wind."
More than forty years ago old Currituck Inlet
closed, and the oysters on the natural beds, which
extended up North Landing River to Green
Point, were killed by the freshening of the
water. Now winds influence the tides which
enter at Oregon Inlet, about fifty-five miles
south of the Court House. The difference be-
l6o VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

tween the highest and lowest tide at Currituck


Court House is three feet. The sound is filled
with sandy shoals, with here and there spots of
mud. The shells of the defunct oysters are
everywhere found mixed with the debris of the
bottom of the sound. This is a favorite locality
with northern sportsmen. The best "gunning
points," as is the case in Chesapeake Bay, are
owned by private parties, and cannot be used
by the public.
Thursday, the loth of December, was cold,
and proved as tempestuous as the previous day;
but the wind had changed to the north, and I
embarked amid a swashy beam-sea, with the
hope of reaching Van Slyck's Landing at Cur-
rituck Narrows. The norther, however, proved
too much for my safety. My course would be
easterly until I had passed the mouth of Coan-
jock Bay and Goose Castle Point, then following
the trend of the .west shore southerly down the
sound; but the wind raised such a rough sea
that I was obliged to turn southward into Coan-

jock Bay, ascend it five miles, and seek for a


crossing-place overland to the sound again,
which I found near the entrance of the lock-
less canal that is used by steamers to pass from
North Landing River to North River and Albe-
marle Sound.
A fire was soon upon which I placed
built,

long, light poles taken from the drift-wood, and


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. l6l

burning them in pieces of the required lengths,


(no axe being at hand,) I make
was prepared to
the portage. Laying these pieces of wood on
the ground, I drew my canoe over them to the
shore of Currituck Sound; then, by making up
back-loads of the cargo, transported everything
to the point of embarkation, which wr as just
inside the mouth of a little creek.
The row to Currituck Narrows was not diffi-

cult, as the north wind was a fair one.


Along
the west shore, of the sound there were many
little houses upon the
high banks, and a wind-
mill supplied the place of a water-power for

grinding corn. The improvements made by Mr.


Van Slyck, of New York, were in cheering con-
trast to what had been seen since leaving Nor-
folk. Here a comfortable hotel welcomes the
northern sportsmen, few of whom, for lack of
accommodations and travelling conveniences, go
much south of this locality, in this state, to shoot
wild-fowl. Currituck Sound has an average
width of four miles. Its length is about thirty-
five miles. Atthe Narrows, a group of marshy
islands divides it into two sections, the northern
one being the longest.
The keen, cold air of the next day made row-
ing a pleasant exercise. After passing through
the tortuous channel, I should have crossed to the
beach and followed it; but this part of the bay
is
very shallow, and deeper water was found on
ii
1 62 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the west side. It was an enjoyable morning,

for gunners were passed, secreted behind their


"
blinds," or pens, of pine brush, which looked like
little groves of conifera growing out of the shoal
water. Geese were honking and ducks were
quacking, while the deep booming of guns was
heard every few minutes. Decoy-birds were
anchored in many places near the marshes.
Every sportsman gave me a cheering word as
the canoe glided over the smooth water, while
here and there the violet-backed swallow dart-
ed about over the marshes as though it were
summer.
When
opposite Dew's Quarter Island, several
menhailed me from a newly constructed shanty.
When the oldest man in the company, who had
never seen a shell like the paper canoe, had ex-
amined it, he shook his head ominously; and
when I him Nag's Head must be reached
told
that day, he grew excited, exclaiming, "Then be
off now! now! Git across the bay under Bald
Beach as soon as ye can, and hug the shore, hug
it well clean down to Collington's, and git across
the sound afore the wind rises. Sich a boat as
that aren't fit for these here waters."

Taking this kindly meant advice, I pulled to


the east side, where there was now a good depth
of water for the canoe. On this high beach the
were well covered with yellow pines, many
hills
of which were noble old trees. On a narrow
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 163

point of the shore was the comfortable house of


Hodges Gallup, the Baptist minister, a generous
old gentleman, who seemed to be loved by all
the watermen along the sound. He was de-
"
scribed as being full of fun and hospitality."

His domain extended for several miles along


the beach, and, with deer quietly browsing in his

grand old woods, formed a pretty picture.


The beach shore now became more thickly
settled, while out in the water, a few rods from
each house, arose the duck-blind, with the
little

gunner and his boat inside, anxiously watching


for while their decoys floated quietly on
birds,
the surface of the water. A
few miles below
Mr. Gallup's estate the canoe entered upon the
broad waters of Albemarle Sound, and at dusk I
approached Roanoke Island. The large build-
ings of the hotels of Nag's Head on the beach
rose up as boldly to the eye as a fortification.
The little sound between Roanoke Island and
the beach was traversed at dusk as far as the first

long pier of Nag's Head, upon which with great


difficulty I landed, and was soon joined by the
keeper of the now deserted summer watering-
place, Mr. C. D. Rutter, who helped me to carry
my property into a room of the old hotel.
Nag's Head Beach is a most desolate locality,
with its high sand-hills, composed of fine sand,
the forms of which are constantly changing with
the action of the dry, hard, varying winds. A
164 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

new and very large hotel was located south of


the first one, and was inhabited by the family of
Captain Jasper Toler, who furnished me with
lodgings. A
few fishermen have their homes on
this dreary beach, but the village, with its one
store, is a forlorn place.
The
bright flashes of Body Island Light, ten
miles distant, on the north side of Oregon Inlet,
showed me my next abiding-place.
The beach from Nag's Head to Oregon Inlet
is and the wind sweeps across
destitute of trees,

it, from the ocean to the sound, with great vio-


lence, forcing the shallow waters to retire, and
leaving the bottom dry as far out as three miles.
The next day was very windy, and the long,
finger-like, sandy shoals, which extended one or
two miles out into the sound, were covered with
only from three to eight inches of water. I could
not hug the beach for protection, but was forced
to keep sound. Frequently it be-
far out in the
came necessary overboard and wade, push-
to get

ing my boat before me. Then a deep channel


between the shoals would be crossed; so, by
walking and rowing in Roanoke Sound, with
the wind blowing the water over the canoe and
drenching its captain, the roundabout twelve
miles' passage to Oregon Inlet was at last accom-

plished, and a most trying one it was.


Body Island Light House was erected in 1872,
on the north side of Oregon Inlet, to take the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 165

place of the old tower on the south shore. It is

in latitude 35 48', and longitude 75 33'. Cap-


tain William F. Hatzel, a loyal North Carolinian,
is the principal keeper, and a most efficient one
he is.

The temperature was falling rapidly when 1

crawled into the high rushes of the wet marsh


near the light-house to seek shelter from the
strong wind that was blowing. As this treeless
beach was destitute of fire-wood, or natural shel-
ter of any kind, necessity compelled me to have
recourse to other means for procuring them. I
carried in my pocket a talisman which must

open any light-keeper's door; from Maine to the


Rio Grande, from Southern California to Alaska,
even to the vicinity of the Arctic Circle, wher-
ever the Light-house Establishment of the United
States has planted a tower or erected a light.
While shivering in wet clothes on this desolate
beach, most thankfully did I remember that kind
and thoughtful friend, who through his potent
influence had supplied me with this open sesame
to light-keepers.
There resides in Washington, when not en-
gaged elsewhere in the important duties of the
Commission of Fisheries, a genial gentleman, an
ardent naturalist, a great scientist. To him the
young naturalists of America turn for information
and advice, and to the humblest applicant Pro-
fessor Spencer F. Baird never turns a deaf ear.
1 66 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

How this distinguished author can attend to so


many and such varied duties with his laborious
investigations, and can so successfully keep up a
large correspondence with perhaps one thousand
scientific associations of nearly every nation of
the universe, is a difficult thing to imagine; but
the popular and much beloved Assistant Secre-

tary of the Smithsonian Institution, seemingly


ubiquitous busy life, does all this and much
in his

more. America may well feel proud of this man


of noble nature, shedding light and truth where-
soever he moves, encouraging alike old and
young with his kindly
sympathy; now taking
his precious moments to answer with his own

busy hand the question in the letter of some boy


naturalist about beasts, birds, reptiles, or fishes,
with which epistles his desk is always covered;
now stimulating to further effort the old man of
science as he struggles with the cares of this
world, striving, sometimes vainly, save for this
ever ready aid, to work out patiently theories
which are soon to blaze forth as substantial facts.
The young generation of naturalists, which is
soon to fill the place of their predecessors, have
in this man the type of all they need ever strive
to attain. How many, alas, will fall far short
of it!

Since boyhood the counsels of this friend had


guided me on many a journey of exploration.
He had not deserted me even in this experiment,
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 167

which my friends called "your wildest and most


foolish undertaking." He had obtained from the
Light House Board a general letter to the light-
keepers of the United States, signed by the
naval secretary, Mr. Walker, in which the keep-
ers were authorized to grant me shelter, &c.,
when necessary. I did not have occasion to use
this letter more than twice during my journey.
Having secretedmy canoe in the coarse grass
of the lowland, I trudged, with my letter in hand,
over the sands to the house of the light-keeper,
Captain Hatzel, who received me cordially; and
after recording in his log-book the circumstances
and date of my arrival, conducted me into a
comfortable room, which was warmed by a
cheerful fire, and lighted up by the smiles of his
most orderly wife. Everything showed disci-
pline and neatness, both in the house and the
light-tower. The whitest of cloths was spread
upon the table, and covered with a well-cooked
meal; then the father, mother, and two sons,
with the stranger within their gates, thanked the
Giver of good gifts for his mercies.

Joining the night-watch of the chief light-


keeper, also
I joined in the good man's enthusi-
asm for his wonderful " fixed white light," the
bright beams of which poured out upon the sur-

rounding waters a flood of brilliancy, gladdening


hearts far out at sea, even though twenty miles

away, and plainly saying, "This is Body Island


1 68 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.
"
Beach: keep off! How grand it was to walk
out on this gallery in the sky! Looking east-

ward, a limitless expanse of ocean; gazing west-


ward, the waters of the great sound, the shores
of which were low marshes miles away. Below
me could be heard the soft cackle of the snow-
goose (Anser hyperboreus), which had left its
nesting-place on the barren grounds of arctic
America, and was now feeding contentedly in its
winter home in the shallow salt-ponds; while the
gentle shur r-r- of the waves softly broke on
the strand. Above, the star-lit heavens, whose
tender beauty seemed almost within my grasp.
Perched thus upon a single shaft, on a narrow
stripof sand far out in the great water, the many
thoughts born of solitude crowded my mind,
when my reverie was abruptly broken by an
exclamation from Captain Hatzel, who threw
open the door, and exclaimed, with beaming
"
eyes peering into the darkness as he spoke, I
see it! Yes, it is I Hatteras Light, thirty-five
miles away. This night, December I3th, is the
first have caught its flash. Tell it to the
time I

Hatteras keeper when you visit the cape."


From Captain Hatzel I gleaned some facts of
deep interest in regard to the inhabitants of the
sound. Some of them, he told me, had Indian
blood in their veins; and to prove the truth of his
assertion he handed me a well-worn copy of the
"
History of North Carolina," by Dr. Francis L.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. .169

Hawks, D. D. From this I obtained facts which


might serve for the intricate mazes of a romance.
It had been a pet scheme with Sir Walter Ra-

leigh to colonize the coast of North Carolina,


then known as Virginia, and though several ex-
peditions had been sent out for that object, each
had failed of successful issue. One of these
expeditions sent by Sir Walter to Roanoke Is-
land consisted of one hundred and twenty-one
persons, of whom seventeen were women and
six children. Of all these souls only two men
returned to the old country, the fate of the re-
mainder being unknown, and shrouded in the
gloom which always attends mystery. England
did not, however, leave her children to perish on
a barren shore in the new land without at least an
effort to succor them.
On March 20, in the year 1590, there sailed
from Plymouth three ships, the Hopewell, John
Evangelist, and Little John, taking in tow two
shallops which were afterwards lost at sea. In
those days the largest vessels of a fleet did not
exceed one hundred to one hundred and forty
tons burden. This expedition was under the
charge of Admiral John White, governor of the
colony of Sir Walter Raleigh on Roanoke Island,
and who had left the feeble band on the island
in 1587. In thirty-six days and eight hours these
small vessels arrived off " Hatorask " Hatteras
Beach. The fleet dropped anchor three leagues
170 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

off the beach, and sent a well-manned boat


through an inlet to Pamplico Sound.
There existed in those days passages from the
ocean through the beaches into the sounds,
which have since been filled up by the action 1

of the sea. Old Roanoke Inlet, now closed,


which was about four miles north of the mod-
ern Oregon Inlet, is supposed to be the one used
by Sir Walter Raleigh's expeditions. It is only
four miles from the site of this closed inlet to

Shallowbag Bay, on Roanoke Island. At the


southern entrance of the bay, near Ballast Point,
some vessel evidently grounded and threw over-
board her stone ballast; hence the name of the
point. Captain Hatzel has examined this stone,
and gives his opinion, as an old pilot, that it is
foreign in character. He never met with similar
stones, and believes that this ballast was depos-
ited at Shallowbag Bay by some of the vessels
of Sir Walter's expeditions.
As the boat's crew above mentioned rowed
northward to Roanoke Island made famous
two hundred and seventy-two years later by
the National and Confederate struggles they
sounded their trumpets and sang familiar songs,
which they hoped might be borne to their coun-
trymen on the shore; but the marshes and up-
land wilderness returned no answering voice.
At daybreak the explorers landed upon Roa-
noke Island, which is twelve miles long by two
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 17 1

and a half wide, and found the spot where Ad-


miral White had left the colony in 1587. Eager-
ly searching for any tokens of the lost ones, they
soon traced in the light soil of the island the
imprint of the moccasin of the savage, but
looked in for any footprint of civilized
vain
man. What had become of their countrymen?
At last some one spied a conspicuous tree,
far up on a sandy bank, blazed and carved.
There were but three letters cut upon it, C.R. O.,
but these simple symbols possessed a world of
meaning. Three years before, when the sad
farewells were being spoken, and the ships were
ready to set sail for England, this feeble band, left
to struggle in the wilds of the new land with sad
forebodings of their possible fate, had agreed
upon a signal, and had promised Admiral White
that if driven to starvation upon the island, they
would plant their colony fifty miles inland, near
a tribe of friendly Indians. Indeed, before the
ships sailed for England, they were making prep-
arations for this move. Admiral White requested
them to carve upon a tree the name of the local-
ity to which they should remove, and if distress
had overtaken them they were to add a cross
over the lettering. Anxiously gathering round
of the lost Englishmen, the
this interesting relic
rude chirography was eagerly scanned, but no
vestige of a cross was found.
Much relieved in mind, the little company
172 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

continued their investigations, when, farther on,


almost in their very pathway, there rose a noble
tree, pointing its top heavenward, as though to
remind them in whose care their lost ones had
been. Approaching this giant, who had stood
a silent sentinel
through and
winter storms
summer skies, they found he bore upon his body
a message for them. Stripped of its bark, five
feet upward from the ground there appeared

upon the bare surface in bold lettering the word


so full of hope Croat'an j and now also, as in
the last case, without the graven cross. Cheered

by these signs, and believing that the lost colo-


nists had carried out their early intentions, and
were now located among the friendly tribe of
Croatans, wheresoever their country might be,
the boat's company decided to go at once to the

ships, and return the next day in search of the


lost colony.
One of the ships, in moving its position from
the unprotected anchorage-ground, parted its
cable and left an anchor on the bottom the
second that had been lost. The wind drove the
ships towards the beach, when a third anchor
was lowered; but it held the little fleet so
close in to the breakers, that the sailors were
forced to slip their cable and work into a chan-
nel-way, where, in deeper water, they held their
ground.
In debating the propriety of holding on and
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 173

attempting to wear out the gale, the scarcity of


their provisions, and the possession of but one
cask of water, and only one anchor for the fleet
to ride at, decided them to go southward in quest
of some favorable landing, where water could be
found. The council held out the hope of cap-
turing Spanish vessels in the vicinity of the
West Indies; andit was
agreed that, if success-
ful, they should return, richly laden with spoils,
to seek their exiled countrymen. One of these
vessels returned to England, while the Admiral
laid his course for Trinidad; and this was the
attempt made to find the colonists.
last
More than a century after Admiral White had
abandoned his colony, Lawson, in writing about
!?
the HatterasIndians, says: They that said
several of their ancestors were white people, and
could talk in a book as we do; the truth of
which confirmed by grey eyes being frequently
is

found among them, and no others. They value


themselves extremely for their affinity to the
English, and are read) to do them all friendly
7

offices. It is probable that the settlement mis-

carried for want of supplies from England, or


through the treachery of the natives; for we
may reasonably suppose that the English were
forced to cohabit with them for relief and con-
versation, and that in process of time they
conformed themselves to the manners of their
Indian relations."
174 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.
"
Dr. Hawks thinks, that, driven by starvation,
such as survived the famine were merged into
the tribes of friendly Indians at Croatan, and,
alas! lost ere long every vestige of Christianity
and civilization; and those who came to shed
light on the darkness of paganism, in the mys-
terious providence of God ended by relapsing
themselves into the heathenism they came to
remove. It is a sad picture of poor human

nature."
needed not the fierce gusts of wind that
It

howled about the tall tower, causing it to vibrate


until water would be spilled out of a pail resting

upon the floor of the lantern, blowing one day


from one quarter of the compass, and changing
the next to another, to warn me that I was near
the Cape of Storms.

Refusing to continue longer with my new


friends, the canoe was put into the water on the
1 and Captain Hatzel's two sons proceeded
6th,
in advance with a strong boat to break a channel-

way through the thin ice which had formed in


the quiet coves. We were soon out in the sound,
where the boys left me, and I rowed out of the
southern end of Roanoke and entered upon the
wide area of Pamplico Sound. To avoid shoals,
it
being calm, I kept about three miles from the
beach in three feet of water, until beyond Duck
Island, when the trees on Roanoke Island slowly
sank below the horizon; then gradually drawing
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 175

beach, the two clumps of trees of north


in to the
and south Chicamicomico came into view. A
life-saving station had recently been erected
north of the first grove, and there is another
fourteen miles further south. The two Chica-
micomico settlements of scattered houses are
each nearly a mile in length, and are separated
by a high, bald sand-beach of about the same
length, which was once heavily wooded; but the
wind has blown the sand into the forest and

destroyed it. A wind-mill in each village raised


itsweird arms to the breeze.
Three miles further down is Kitty Midget's
Hammock, where a few red cedars and some
remains of live-oaks tell of the extensive forest
that once covered the beach. Here Captain
Abraham Hooper lives, and occupies himself in
fishing w ith nets in the ocean for blue-fish, which
r

are salted down and sent to the inland towns for


a market. I had drawn my boat into the sedge
to secure a night's shelter, when the old captain
on his rounds captured me. The change from a
bed in the damp sedge to the inside seat of the

largest fireplace I had ever beheld, was indeed


a pleasant one. Its inviting front covered almost
one side of the room. While the fire flashed up
the wide chimney, I sat inside the fireplace with
the three children of my host, and enjoyed the
genial glow which arose from the fragments of
the wreck of a vessel which had pounded her-
176 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

self to death upon the strand near Kitty Midget's


Hammock. How
curiously those white-haired
children watched the man who had come so far
in apaper boat! "Why did not the paper boat
soak to pieces? " they asked. Each explanation
seemed but to puzzle them the more; and I
found myself in muchsame condition of
the
mind when trying to make some discoveries
concerning Kitty Midget. She must, however,
have lived somewhere on Clark's Beach long
before the present proprietor was born. We
spent the next day fishing with nets in the surf
for blue-fish, it being about the last day of
their stay in that vicinity. They go south as
far as Cape Hatteras, and then disappear in deep

water; while the great flocks of gulls, that ac-


company them to gather the remnants of fish
they scatter in their savage meals, rise in the air
and fly rapidly away in search of other dainties.
On Thursday I set out for Cape Hatteras.
The old sailor's song, that
" Hatteras has a
blow in store
For those who pass her howling door,"

has far more truth than poetry in it. Before pro-


ceeding far the a tempest, when -a
wind blew
young fisherman in his sailboat bore down upon
me, and begged me to come on board. We at-
tempted to tow the canoe astern, but she filled
with water, which obliged us to take her on
board. As we flew along before the wind,
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 177

dashing over the shoals with mad-cap temerity,


I discovered that my new acquaintance, Burnett,

was a most daring as well as reckless sailor.


He told me how he had capsized his father's
schooner by carrying sail too long. " This 'ere
slow way of doing things " he detested. His
recital was characteristic of the man.
*
You see, sir, we was bound for Newbern
up the Neuse River, and as we were well into
the sound with all sail set, and travelling along
f

lively, daddy says, Lorenzo, I reckon a little

yaupon wouldn't hurt me, so I'll go below and


start a fire under the kittle.' Do as you likes, ?

daddy,' sez So down below he goes, and I


I*.

takes command big black


of the schooner. A
squall soon come over Cape Hatteras from the
Gulf Stream, and it did look like a screecher.
Now, I thought, old woman, I'll make your sides
ache; so I pinted her at it, and afore I could luff
her up in the wind, the squall kreened her on to
her beam-ends. You'd a laughed to have split
yourself, mister, if you could have seen daddy a-
crawling out of the companion-way while the
water was a-running down stairs like a crick.
f
Says he, ruther hurriedly, Sonny, what's up?'
?
It isn't what's up, daddy but what's down] ;

sez I;
r
it sort o' looks as if we had capsized.'
*
Sure 'nuff,' answered dad, as the ballast shifted
and the schooner rolled over keel uppermost.
We floundered about like porpoises, but managed
12
178 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

to get astride her backbone, when dad looked


kind of scornfully at me, and burst out with,
r '

Sonny, do you call yourself a keerful sailor?


r
r
Keerful enough, dad,' sez I, for a smart one.
It's more credit to a man to drive his vessel like

a sailor, than to be crawling and bobbing along


like a diamond-backed terrapin.' Now, stranger,
if you'll believe me, that keerful old father of
mine would never let me take the helum again,
so I sticks to my aunt at the cape."
found that the boat in which we were sailing
I

was a dug-out, made from two immense cypress


logs. Larger boats than this are made of three
logs, and smaller ones are dug out bf one.
Burnett told me that frame boats were so easily
pounded to pieces on the shoals, that dug-outs
were preferred being very durable. soon We
passed the hamlet of North Kinnakeet, then
Scarsborough with its low houses, then South
Kinnakeet with its two wind-mills, and after
these arose a sterile, bald beach with Hatteras
light-tower piercing the sky, and west of it Hat-
teras woods and marshes. We
approached the
low shore and ascended a little creek, where
we left our boats, and repaired to the cottage
of Burnett's aunt.
After the barren shores I had passed, this
little house, imbedded in living green, was like

a bright star in a dark night. It was hidden


'

away in a heavy thicket of live-oaks and cedars,


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 179

and surrounded by yaupons, the bright red ber-


ries of which glistened against the light green
leaves. An old woman
stood in the doorway
with a kindly greeting for her " wild boy," re-
joicing the while that he had "got back to his
old aunty once more."
* "
Yes, aunty," said my friend Lorenzo, I am
back again like a bad penny, but not empty-
handed; for as soon as our season's catch of
blue-fish is sold, old aunty will have sixty or

seventy dollars."
"
He has a good heart, he
so head-strong,"
if is

whispered the motherly woman, as she wiped a


tear from her eyes, and gazed with pride upon
the manly-looking voung fellow, and invited
us in to tea YAUPON.

jfSLAND J-IGHT-J-iOUSE
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

CHAPTER X.

FROM CAPE HATTERAS TO CAPE FEAR, NORTH


CAROLINA.

CAPE HATTERAS LIGHT. HABITS OF BIRDS. STORM AT HAT-


'

TERAS INLET. MILES OF WRECKS. THE YACHT JULIA


SEARCHING FOR THE PAPER CANOE. CHASED BY PORPOISES.
MARSH TACKIES. OCRACOKE INLET. A GRAVE- YARD BE-
ING SWALLOWED UP BY THE SEA. CORE SOUND. THREE
WEDDINGS AT HUNTING QUARTERS. MOREHEAD CITY.
NEWBERN. SWANSBORO. A PEA-NUT PLANTATION. THE
ROUTE TO CAPE FHAR.

HATTERAS is the apex of a tri-


CAPE
angle. Itthe easternmost part of the
is

state of North Carolina, and it extends farther


into the ocean than any Atlantic cape of the
United States. It presents a low, broad, sandy
point to the sea, and for several miles beyond it,
in the ocean, are the dangerous Diamond Shoals,
the dread of the mariner.
The Gulf Stream, with its river-like current
of water flowing northward from the Gulf of
Mexico, in its oscillations from east to west fre-

quently approaches to within eighteen or twenty


miles of the cape, filling a large area of atmos-
phere with its warmth, and causing frequent
local disturbances. The weather never remains
^/\X
;>ve >
^
^C.
Cf, ^n^^ *^ ^
x
'I ;'

"^^WJJi*,,^ \^
HKuCxi^ ' 4Ui(.t :

ff ^
7 /*
;/
; / /
/
v

X*
v
v
jt
/* 1

* 5=
? UJ >,

ft fc ,
l
%> ^
cr L , fe
< -

v>
'^''

O
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. l8l

long in a settled state. As most vessels try to


make Hatteras Light, to ascertain their true po-
sition, &c., and because it juts out so far into the
Atlantic, the locality has become the scene of
many wrecks, and the beach, from the cape
down to Hatteras Inlet, fourteen miles, is strewn
with the fragments of vessels.
The coast runs north and south above, and
east and west south of the cape. The old light-
house had been replaced by the finest light-tower
I had ever examined, which was completed in

1870. It is one hundred and ninety feet in

height, and shows a white, revolving light.


BodyIsland Light, though forty feet less in
elevation, is frequently seen by the Hatteras
light-keeper, while the splendid Hatteras Light
had been seen but once by Captain Hatzel, of
Body Island. One nautical mile south of Hat-
teras Light is a small beacon light-tower, which
is of great service to the coasting-vessels that
pass it in following the eighteen-feet curve of
the cape two miles from the land inside of Dia-
mond Shoals.
While speaking of light-houses, it
may be
interesting to naturalists who live far inland to
know that while (as they are well aware) thou-
sands of birds are killed annually during their
flights by striking against telegraphic wires,
many wild-fowls are also destroyed by dashing
against the lanterns of the light-towers during
T82 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the night. While at Body Island Beach, Captain


Hatzel remarked to me that, during the first
winter after the new
light-tower was completed,
the snow-geese, which winter on the island, would

frequently at night strike the thick glass panes


of the chamber, and fall senseless upon the floor
of the gallery. The second season they did not
in a single instance repeat the mistake, but had
seemingly become educated to the character of
the danger.
I have seenone lantern damaged to the
amount of fivehundred dollars, by a goose
breaking a pane of glass and striking heavily
upon the costly lens which surrounds the lamp.
Light-keepers sometimes sit upon the gallery,
and, looking along the pathway of light which
shoots into the outer darkness over their heads,
will see a few dark specks approaching them in
thisbeam of radiance. These specks are birds,
confused by the bright rays, and ready to fall an
easy prey to the eager keeper, who, quickly lev-
elling his double-barrelled gun, brings it to bear
upon the opaque, moving cloud, and with the
discharge of the weapon there goes whirling
through space to the earth below his next morn-
ing's breakfast of wild-fowl.
I found Mr. W. R.
Jennett and his first assist-
ant light-keeper, Mr. A. W. Simpson, intelligent
gentlemen. The assistant has devoted his time,
when off duty, to the study of the habits of
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 183

food-fishes of the sound, and has furnished the


United States Commission of Fisheries with sev-
eral papers on that interesting subject.
Here also was Mr. George Onslow, of the
United States Signal Service, who had completed
his work of constructing a telegraph line from
Norfolk along the beach. southward to this point,
its present terminus. With a fine telescope he
could frequently identify vessels a few miles
from the cape, and telegraph their position to
New York. He had lately saved a vessel by
telegraphing to Norfolk its dangerous location
on Hatteras beach, where it had grounded. By
this timely notice a wrecking-steamer had ar-
rived and hauled the schooner off in good con-
dition.
A low range of hills commences at Cape Hat-
teras, in the rear of the light-house, and extends
nearly to Hatteras Inlet. This range is heavily
wooded with live-oaks, yellow pines, yaupons,
cedars, and bayonet-plants. The fishermen and
wreckers live in rudely constructed houses, shel-
tered by this thicket, which is dense enough to
protect them from the strong winds that blow
from the ocean and the sound.
I walked twelve miles
through this pretty,
green retreat, and spent Sunday with Mr. Homer
W. Styron, who keeps a small store about two
miles from the inlet. He is a self-taught as-
tronomer, and used an ingeniously constructed
184 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

telescope of his own manufacture for studying


the heavens.
I found at the post-office in his store a letter
from a yachting party which had left Newbern,
North Carolina, to capture the paper canoe and
to force upon its captain the hospitality of the
people of that city, on the Neuse River, one
hundred miles from the cape. Judge I. E. West,
the owner of
the yacht "Julia," and his friends,
had been cruising since the eleventh day of the
month from Ocracoke Inlet to Roanoke Island
in search of me. Judge West, in his letter, ex-

pressed a strong desireto have me take my


Christmas dinner with his family. This gen-
erous treatment from a stranger was fully ap-
preciated, and
determined to push on to
I

Morehead City, from which place it would be


convenient to reach Newbern by rail without
changing my established route southward, as I
would be compelled to do if the regular water
route of the Neuse River from Pamplico Sound
were followed.
On Saturday night, spent at Hatteras Inlet,
this
there broke upon us one of the fiercest tempests
I ever witnessed, even in the tropics.
My pedes-
triantramp down the shore had scarcely ended
when it commenced in
reality. For miles along
the beach thousands of acres of land were soon

submerged by the sea and by the torrents of


water which fell from the clouds. While for a
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 185

moment the night was dark as Erebus, again


the vivid flash of lightning exposed to view the

swaying forests and the gloomy sound. The sea


pounded on the beach as if asking for admission
to old Pamplico. It seemed to say, I demand a

new inlet; and, as though trying to carry out its

desire, sent great waves rolling up the shingle


and over into the hollows among the hills, wash-

ing down low sand dunes as if they also


the
were in it to remove this
collusion with frail

barrier, this narrow strip of low land which


separated the Atlantic from the wide interior
sheet of water.
The phosphorescent sea, covered with its tens
of millions of animalcula, each one a miniature
light-house, changed in color from inky blackness
to silver sheen. Will the ocean take to itself
this frail foothold? we queried. Will it in-
gulf us in its insatiable maw, as the whale did
Jonah? There was no subsidence, no pause in
the storm. It howled, bellowed, and screeched

like a legion of demons, so that the crashing of


falling trees, and the twisting of the sturdy live-
oak's toughest limbs, could hardly be heard in
the din. Yet during this wild night my storm-
hardened companion sat with his pretty wife by
the open fireplace, as unmoved as though we
were in the shelter of a mountain side, while he
calmly discoursed of storms, shipwrecks, and
terrible struggles for life that this lonely coast
1 86 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

had witnessed, which sent thrills of horror to

my heart.

traversing the beach during the after-


While
noon, as wreck after wreck, the gravestones of
departed ships, projected their timbers from the
sands, I had made a calculation of the number
of vessels which had left their hulls to rot on
Hatteras beach since the ships of Sir Walter
Raleigh had anchored above the cape, and it re-
sulted in making one continuous line of vessels,
wreck touching wreck, along the coast for many,
many miles. Hundreds of miles of the Atlantic
coast beaches would have been walled in by the
wrecks could they have come on to the strand
at one time, and all the dwellers along the coast,
outside of the towns, would have been placed
in independent circumstances by wrecking their
cargoes.
During this wild night, while the paper canoe
was safely stowed in the rushes of the marsh at
the cape, and its owner was enjoying the warmth
of the young astronomer's fire at the inlet, less

than twenty miles from us, on the dangerous


edge of Ocracoke shoals, the searching party of
the yacht Julia were in momentary expectation
of going to the bottom of the sound. For hours
the gallant craft hung to her anchors, which
were heavily backed by all the iron ballast that
could be attached to the cables. Wave after
wave swept over her, and not a man could put
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 187

his head above the hatches. Then, as she rolled


in the sea, her cabin-windows went under, and
streams of water were forced through the ports in-
to the confined space which was occupied by the
little
party. For a time they were in imminent
danger, for the vessel dragged anchor to the edge
of the shoal, and with a heavy thud the yacht
struck on the bottom. All hopes of ever return-
ing to Newbern were lost, when the changing
tide swung the boat off into deeper water, where
she rode out the storm in safety.
Before morning the wind shifted, and by nine
o'clock I retraced my steps to the cape, and on

Tuesday rowed down to Hatteras Inlet, which


was reached a little past noon. Before attempt-
ing to cross this dangerous tidal gate-way of the
ocean I hugged the shore close to its edge, and
paused to make myself familiar with the sand-
hills of the opposite side, a mile away, which
were to serve as the guiding-beacons in the pas-

sage. How often had I, lying awake at night,

thought of and dreaded the crossing of this


ill-omened inlet! It had given me much mental

suffering. Now it was before me. Here on my


right was the great sound, on my left the nar-
row beach island, and out through the portal
of the open inlet surged and moaned under a
leaden sky that old ocean which now seemed to
frown at me, and to say: "Wait, my boy, until
the inlet's waves deliver you to me, and I will
1 88 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

put you among my other victims for your te-


merity."
As gazed across the current I remarked that
I

it did not seem


very rough, though a strong ebb
was running out to the sea, and if crossed im-
mediately, before the wind arose, there could be
no unreasonable risk. My canvas deck-cover
was carefully pulled close about my waist, and a
rigid inspection of oars and row-locks was made;
then, with a desire to reserve my strength for
any great demand that might be made upon it a
little later, I rowed with a steady stroke out into

Hatteras Inlet. There was no help nearer than


Styron's, two miles away on the upper shore,
while the beach I was approaching on the other
side was uninhabited for nearly sixteen miles, to
the village at its southern end, near Ocracoke
Inlet. Upon entering the swash I thought of the
sharks which the Hatteras fishermen had told
me frequently seized their oars, snapping the
thin blades in pieces, assuring me, at the same

time, that mine would prove very attractive,


being so white and glimmering in the water, and
offering the same glittering fascination as a
silver-spoon bait does to a blue-fish. These
cheerful suggestions caused a peculiar creeping
sensation to come over me, but I tried to quiet

myself with the belief that the sharks had fol-


lowed the blue-fish into deeper water, to escape
cold weather.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 189

The canoe crossed the upper ebb, and entered


an area where the ebb from the opposite side of
the inlet struck the first While crossing
one.
the union of the twocurrents, a wind came in at
the opening through the beach, and though not
a strong one, it created a great agitation of the
water. The dangerous experience at Watcha-
preague Inlet had taught me that when in such
a sea one must pull with all his strength, and
that the increased momentum would give greater

buoyancy to the shell for while under this treat-


;

ment she bounced from one irregular wave to


another with a climbing action which greatly
relieved my anxiety. The danger seemed to be
decreasing, and I stole a furtive glance over my
shoulder at the low dunes of the beach shore
which I was approaching, to see how far into the
inlet the tide had dragged me. The white water
to leeward warned me of a shoal, and forced me
to pull hard for the sound to escape being drawn
into the breakers. This danger was hardly
passed, when suddenly the waters around me
seethed and foamed, and the short waves parted
and closed, as great creatures rose from the
deep into the air several feet, and then fell heav-
ily into the sea. My tiny shell rocked and
pitched about wildly as these animals appeared
and disappeared, leaping from the waves all around
me, diving under the boat and reappearing on
the opposite side. They lashed the current with
190 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

their strong tails, and snorted or blowed most


dismally. For an instant surprise and alarm took
such possession of me that not a muscle of my
arms obeyed my will, and the canoe commenced
to drift in the driving stream towards the open
sea. This confusion was only momentary, for as
soon as I discovered that my companions were
porpoises and only old acquaintances, I deter-
mined to avoid them as soon as possible.
With a quick glance at my stern range, a sand-
hill on the shore of the inlet, and another look
over my shoulder for the sand dunes of the other
side, I exerted every muscle to reach the beach;
but my frisky friends Were in no mood to leave
me, but continued their fun with increased ener-
gy as reinforcements came up from all directions.
The faster I rowed the more they multiplied,
ploughing the sea in erratic courses. They were
from seven feet in length, and must have
five to

weighed from two hundred to four hundred


pounds each. Though their attentions were kind-
ly meant, their brusqueness on such an unsteady
footing was unpardonable. I most feared the

strong, shooting movements of their tails in the


sudden dives under my canoe, for one sportive
touch of such a caudality would have rolled
me over, and furnished material for a tale the
very anticipation of which was unpleasant.
The aquatic gambols of the porpoises lasted
but a few minutes after they had called in all
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. IQT

their neighbors, and had chased me into three


feet depth of water. They then spouted a nasal

farewell, which sounded more catarrhal than


guitaral, and left me for the more profitable oc-
cupation of fishing in the tide-way of the inlet,
while I rowed into a shallow cove, out of the
ebb, to rest, and to recover from the effects of
my fright.
As pulled along the beach the tide receded
I

so rapidly that the canoe was constantly ground-


ing, and wading became necessary, for I could
not get within several feet of the shore. When
five miles from Hatteras Inlet I espied an empty

grass cabin, which the fishermen used in Febru-


ary while catching shad; and, as a southerly wind
was now blowing from the sea, and rain was
falling, it offered a night's shelter for the traveller.
This Robinson Crusoe looking structure was
located upon the low land near the sound, while
bleak, sharp-pointed, treeless and grassless sand-
hills, blown into shape by the winds, arose in the

background, and cut off a view of the ocean,


which, judging from the low, melancholy moan-
ing coming over the dunes, was in a sad mood.
The canoe was hauled into the bushes and
might bear
tied securely for fear a deceptive tide
it
away. The
provisions, blankets, &c., were
moved into the grass hut, which needed repair-
ing. The holes in the south wall were soon
thatched, and a bed easily prepared from the
192 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

rushes of the marsh. It mattered not that they


were wet, for a piece of painted canvas was
spread over them, and the inviting couch fin-

ished.
As fresh water can usually be obtained on all
these low beaches by digging two or three feet
into the sand, I looked for a large clam-shell, and

my search being rewarded, I was soon engaged


in digging a well near the cabin.
Upon looking up from my work a curious
sight met my gaze. In some mysterious way
every sharp-pointed sand-hillhad been covered
by a black object, which swayed about and nod-
ded up and down in a strange manner. As I
watched the development of this startling phe-
nomenon, the nodding, black objects grew in
size until the head, body, and four legs of a
horse were clearly cut against the sky. A little
later every crest was surmounted by the comical

figure of a marsh-tacky. Then a few sheep came


out of the hollows among the hills and browsed
on the coarse grass near the cabin, as though
they felt the loneliness of their situation so far
removed from mankind. With the marsh-ponies,
the sheep, the wild-fowls of the sound, and the
sighing sea for companions, the night passed
away.
The bright moonlight roused me at five o'clock
in themorning, and I pushed off again in shoal
water on an ebb-tide, experiencing much dim"-
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 193

culty in dragging the canoe over shallow places


until deep water was entered, when the row to
Ocracoke became an agreeable one. The land-
ing-place at Ocracoke, not far from the light-
house, was reached at noon, and the people
gathered to see the paper boat, having been
notified of proximity by fishermen.
my
The women here can pull a pretty good stroke,
and frequently assist their husbands in the fish-
eries. These old dames ridiculed the idea of
having a boat so small and light as the canoe.
One old lady laid aside her pipe and snuff-
paddle (snuff-rubbing is a time-honored insti-

tution in the south), and roughly grasping the


bow of the craft, lifted high in the
it air, then,
glancing at the fine model, she lowered it
slowly
w
to theground, exclaiming, I reckon I wouldn't
"
risk my life acrossing a creek in her.
1

These people told me that the yacht Julia had


stopped there to make inquiries for me, and had
departed forNewbern.
It was more than a mile from the landing to

Ocracoke Inlet, and a mile and three quarters


across it to the beach. A straight course from
the landing to the village of Portsmouth, on the
lower side of the inlet, was a distance of five
and not one of the hardy watermen, who
miles,
thumped the sides of my boat with their hard
fists to strength, believed that I
ascertain its

could cross the sound to the other village with-


13
194 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

out rolling over. One kind-hearted oysterman


offered to carry myself and boat to Portsmouth;
but as the day was calm, I rowed away on the
five-mile stretch amid doleful prognostications,
such as: "That feller will make a coffin for his-
self out of that yere gimcrack of an egg-shell.
It's all a man's life is wurth to go in her," &c.

While approaching the low Portsmouth shore


of the sound, flocks of Canada geese flew within
pistol-shot of my head. Aman in a dug-out
canoe told me that the gunners of the village
had reared from the egg a flock of wild geese
which now aggregated some seven or eight hun-
dred birds, and that these now flying about were
used to decoy their wild relatives.
Near the beach a sandy hill had been the place
of sepulture for the inhabitants of other genera-
tions, but for years past the tidal current had
been cutting the shore away until coffin alter
coffin with its contents had been washed into
the sound. Captain Isaac S. Jennings, of Ocean
County, New Jersey, had described this spot to
me as follows:
"
I landed at Portsmouth and examined this
curious burial-ground. Here by the water were
the remains of the fathers, mothers, brothers,
and sisters of the people of the village so near at
hand; yet these dismal relics of their ancestors
were allowed to be stolen away piecemeal by
the encroaching ocean. While I
gazed sadly
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 195

upon the strata of coffins protruding from the


banks, shining objects like jewels seemed to be
sparkling from between the* cracks of their frac-
tured sides; and as I tore away the rotten wood,
rows of toads were discovered sitting in sol-
emn council, their bright eyes peering from
among the debris of bones and decomposed
substances."
Portsmouth Island is nearly eight miles long.
Whalebone Inlet is at its lower end, but is too
shallow to be of any service to commerce. Hat-
teras and Ocracoke inlets admit sea-going ves-
sels. It is from Whalebone
thirty-eight miles
Inlet to Cape Lookout, which projects like a

wedge into the sea nearly three miles from the


mainland, and there is not another passage
through the narrow beach in all that distance
that is of any use to the mariner. Following
the trend of the coast for eleven miles from the
point of Cape Lookout, there is an inlet, but,
from the character of its channel and its shal-
lowness, it is not of much value.

Leaving Portsmouth, the canoe entered Core


Sound, which grew narrower as the shoals inside
of Whalebone were crossed, partly by row-
Inlet

ing and partly by wading on the sand-flats. As


night came on, a barren stretch of beach on my
left hand was followed until I espied the
only
house within a distance of sixteen miles along
the sea. It was occupied
by a coasting skipper,
196 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

whose schooner was anchored a long


fine little
distance from the land on account of the shoal-
ness of the water. Dreary sand-hills protected
the cottage from the bleak winds of the ocean.
While yet a long distance from the skipper's
home, a black object could be seen crawling up
the sides of a mound of white sand, and after it
reached the apex it remained in one position,
while I rowed, and waded, and pulled my canoe
towards the shore. When the goal was reached,
and the boat was landed high up among the
scrub growth, I shouldered my blankets and
charts, and plodded through the soft soil towards
the dark object, which I now recognized to be a
man on a lookout post. He did not move from
his position until I reached the hillock, when he
suddenly slid down the bank and landed at my
with a cheery
feet,
rf
Well, now, I thought it was you. Sez I to

myself, That's him, sure, when I seed you


four miles away. Fust thinks I, It's only a
log, or a piece of wrak-stufF afloating. Pretty
soon up comes your head and shoulders into
sight; then sez I, It's a man, sure, but where is
his boat? foryou see, I couldn't see your boat, it
was so low down in the water. Then I reckoned
it was a man
afloating on a log, but arter a
while the boat loomed up too, and I says, I'll be
dog-goned if that isn't him. I went up to New-
bern, some time ago, in the schooner, and the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 197

people there said there was a man coming down


the coast a-rowing a paper boat on a bet. The
boat weighed only fifty-eight pounds, and the
man had a heft of only eighty pounds. When
pa and me went up to the city agin, the folks
said the man was close on to us, and this time

they said the man and his boat together weighed


only eighty pounds. Now I should think you
weighed more than that yourself, letting alone
the boat."

Having assured the young man that I was


indeed myself, and that the Newbern people had
played upon his credulity, we walked on to the
house, where the family of Captain James Mason
kindly welcomed me to a glowing wood-fire and
hearty supper. Though I had never heard of
their existence entered Core Sound, the
till I

kindness of these people was like that of old


friends.
Half a mile below Captain Mason's home, a
short time before my visit, a new breach had
been made by the ocean through the beach.
About twenty years before a similar breach had
occurred in the same locality, and was known
"
during its short life as Pillintary Inlet." The
next day I crossed the sound, which is here four
miles in width, and coasted along to the oyster-
men's village of Hunting Quarters, on the main-
land. The houses were very small, but the
hearts of the poor folks were very large. They
198 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

came edge and carried the canoe


to the water's
into the only store inthe neighborhood. Its

proprietor, Mr. William H. Stewart, insisted


upon sharing his bachelor's quarters in an
my
unfinished room of the storehouse. My young
host was hardly out of his teens. In his boyish

way he kindly remarked:


" am
here all alone. Father told me, before
I

he died, never to let a stranger pass my door but


to make him share my lodgings, humble though
they are; and now, any way, you're just in time
for the fun, for we are to have three weddings

to-night, and all the boys and girls of the neigh-


borhood be at Hunting Quarters."
will
I entered a mild protest
against joining in the
festivities, on the plea of not having received an
invitation ;
at which the handsome youth laughed
heartily.
"Invitation!" he exclaimed; "why, no one
ever gives out invitations in Hunting Quarters.
When there is to be a r jollification of any sort, '

everybody goes to the house without being


asked. You see we are all neighbors here. Up
at Newbern and at Beaufort, and other great
cities, people have their ways, but here all are
friends."
So we went to the little house in the piny
forest, where two hearts were to be made one.
The only room on the first floor was crowded
with people. The minister had not arrived, and
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 199

the crowd was gazing at the young groom and his

pretty bride-elect as they sat in two chairs in the


middle of the company, with their arms around
each other, never speaking a word to any one.
The heavy weight of people began to settle the
floor, and as two joists gave way I struggled to

escape through an open window, thinking we


would be precipitated into the cellar below.
But the good-natured company took no notice
of the snapping timbers, only ejaculating, "She'll
soon touch bottom;" and to my inquiries about
the inconvenience of being pitched through to
the cellar, a rustic youth, with great merriment
depicted upon his countenance, replied:
"
Sullers, captain, why, there ain't a suller to a
buildin' within thirty miles of the Quarters. We
never uses sullers hereabouts."
By my side was a young fisherman, who had
got home from a cruise, and was overflowing
with affection towards every girl present. " O,
gals," he would cry, "you don't know how nice
"
I feels to get back to you once more ! Throw-
ing his arms around a bright-eyed girl, who
"
vainly tried to escape him, he said, O, weary
mariner, here is
thy rest! No more shall he
wander from thee."
This sentimental strain was interrupted by an
old lady, who reached her arm over my shoul-
der to administer a rebuke. " Sam, ye're a fool " !

she cried; "ye're beside yourself to-night, and


200 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

afore this paper-canoe captain, too. Ef I was


a gal I'd drap yere society, wid yere familiar
ways right in company."
The blow and the admonition fell harmlessly
upon the head and the heart of the sailor, who
"
replied, Aunty, I knows my advantages in
Hunting Quarters ivimen is plenty ',
and men
is few"
The crowd roared with
laughter at this truism,
but were quieted by the shout of a boy that
the preacher was a-coming; whereupon the rev-
erend gentleman elbowed his way through
the guests to the quiet couple, and requested
them to stand up. A
few hurried words by the
clergyman, a few bashful replies from the young
people, and the two were made one. The crowd
rushed outside of the house, where a general
scramble took place among the boys for their
girls. Then was formed, headed
a procession

by the clergyman, which marched along the


sandy road to another house in the woods, where
the second marriage was to be celebrated.
It was amusing to see the young men dash

away from the procession, to run to the village store


for candy at twenty-five cents per pound, con-
taining as much terra alba (white clay) as sugar.
With would run back to
well-filled pockets they
the procession and fill the girls' aprons with the
sweets, soon repeating the process, and shower-
ing upon the fair ones cakes, raisins, nuts, and
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 2OI

oranges. The only young man who seemed to


find no favor in any woman's eyes invested
more sweetmeats than the others; and
capital in
though every girl in the procession gave him a
sharp word or a kick as he passed, yet none re-
fused his candies as he tossed them at the maid-
ens, or stuffed them into the pockets of their
dresses.
The second ceremony was performed in about
three minutes, and the preacher feeling faint from
his long ride through the woods, declared he must
have some supper. So, while he was being
served, the girls chatted together, the old ladies
helped each other to snuff with little wooden pad-
dles, which were left protruding from one corner
of their mouths after they had taken "a dip,"
as they called it. The boys, after learning that
the preacher had postponed the third marriage
for an hour, with a wild shout scampered off
to Stewart's store for more candies. I took
advantage of the interim to inquire how it was
that the young ladies and gentlemen were upon
such terms of pleasant intimacy.
"Well, captain," replied the person interro-
gated, "you sees we is all growed up together,
and brotherly love and sisterly affection is our
teaching. The brethren love the sisteren; and
they say that love begets love, so the sisteren
loves the brethren. It's parfecly nateral. That's
"
the hull story, captain. How is it up your way?
2O2 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

At last the preacher declared himself satisfied


with all he had eaten, and that enough was as
good as a feast; so the young people fell into line,
and we trudged to the third house, where, with
the same dispatch, the third couple were united.
Then the fiddler scraped the strings of his instru-
ment, and a double-shuffle dance commenced.
The stamped and moved their feet about in
girls
the same manner as the men. Soon four or five
of the young ladies left the dancing-party, and
seated themselves in a corner, pouting discon-
tentedly. My companion explained to me that
the deserters were a little stuck-up, having
made two or three visits on a schooner to the

city (Newbern), where they had other ways


of dancing, and where the folks didn't think
it pretty for a girl to strike her heels upon the
floor, &c.
Howlong they danced I know not, for the
prospect of a long row on the morrow sent me
to rest in the storehouse, from which I was called

by a kind old couple sending for me to take tea


with them at half an hour after midnight. Un-
willing to wound
the sensitive feelings of these
hospitable people, I answered the summons in
propria persona, and found it was the mother
of bride No. i, to whom I was indebted for
the invitation. A well-filled table took
up the
space in the centre of the room, where a few
hours before the timbers creaked beneath the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 203

weight of the curious crowd; and there, sitting


on one side in the same affectionate manner I
have described, were the bride and groom, ap-
parently unmoved by the change of scene, while
the bride's mother rocked in her chair, moaning,
"
O
John, if you'd taken the other gal, I might
have stood it, but this yere one has been my
comfort."
At dawn the canoe was putCore Sound,
into
and I followed the western shore, cheered by the
bright sun of our Saviour's natal day. At noon
the mouth of the thoroughfare between Harker's
Island and the mainland was unintentionally
passed, and I rowed along by the side of the
island next FortMacon, which is inside of the

angle made by Cape Lookout.


Finding impossible to reach Newbern via
it

Morehead City that day, the canoe was beached


upon the end of Harker's where
Island, I break-
fasted at the fashionable hour of two p. M., with
men, women, and children around me. My
mode of cooking the condensed food and liquid
beef, so quickly prepared for the palate, and the
remarkable boat of paper, all filled the islanders
with wonder. They were at first a little shy,
looking upon the apparition which seemed in
some wonderful way to have dropped upon
their beach with the light of curiosity in their
eyes.
Then, as I explained the many uses to which
204 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

paper was put, even to the paying off of great


national debts, my audience became very friend-

ly, and offered to get


me up a Christmas dinner
in their cabins among the groves of trees near
the strand, if I would tarry with them until night.
But time was precious; so, with thanks on my
part for their kind offers, we parted, they helping
me launch my little boat, and waving a cheerful
adieu as I headed the canoe for Beaufort, which
was quietly passed in the middle of the afternoon.
Three miles further on, the railroad pier of
Morehead City, in Bogue Sound, was reached,
and a crowd of people carried the canoe into
the hotel. A telegram was soon received from
the superintendent of the railroad at Newbern,

inviting me to a free ride to the city in the first


train of the following morning.
The reader who has followed me since I left

the chilly regions of the St. Lawrence must not


have his patience taxed by too much detail, lest
he should weary of my story and desert my
company. Were not for this fear, it would
it

give me pleasure to tell how a week was passed


in Newbern; how the people came even from
interior towns to see the paper canoe; how
some, doubting my veracity, slyly stuck the
blades of their pocket-knives through the thin
sides of the canoe, forgetting that it had yet to
traverse many dangerous inlets, and that its

owner preferred a tight, dry boat to one punc-


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 205

tured by knives. Even old men became enthu-


siastic, and when I was absent from my little
craft, an uncontrollable ambition seized them,
and they got into the frail shell as it rested upon
the floor of a hall, and threatened its destruc-
tion. It seemed impossible to make one gen-

tleman of Newbern understand that when the


boat was in the water she was resting upon all
her bearings, but when out of water only upon
a thin strip of wood.
"
By George," said this stout gentleman in a
"
whisper to a friend, I told wife I would get
my
into that boat if I smashed it."
"And what did the lady say, old fellow?"
asked the friend.
" "
O," he replied, she said, Now don't make
f

a fool of yourself, Fatness, or your ambition may


"
get you into the papers,' and the speaker fairly
shook with laughter.

While at Newbern, Judge West and his brother

organized a grand hunt, and the railroad com-


pany sent us down the road eighteen miles to a
wild district, where deer, coons, and wild-fowl
were and where we hunted all night for
plentiful,
coons and ducks, and all day for deer. Under
these genial influences the practical study of
geography for the first time seemed dull, and I
became aware that, under the efforts of the cit-
izens of Newbern to remind me of the charms
206 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

of civilized society, was, as a travelling geog-


I

rapher, fast becoming demoralized.


Could I, many pleasures I was daily
after the

enjoying, settle down to a steady pull and one


meal a day with a lunch of dry crackers; or
sleep on the floor of fishermen's cabins, with
fleas and other little annoyances attendant there-
on? Having realized tore myself
my position, I

away from my many new and retraced


friends

my steps to Morehead City, leaving it on Tues-


day, January 5th, and rowing down the little
sound called Bogue towards Cape Fear.
As night came on I discovered on the shore a
grass cabin, which was on the plantation of Dr.
Emmett, and had been left tenantless by some
fisherman. This served for shelter during the
night, though the struggles and squeal ings of a
drove of hogs attempting to enter through the
rickety door did not contribute much to my
repose.
The watercourses now became more intri-

cate, growing narrower as I rowed southward.


The open waters of the sound were
left behind,

and entered
I a labyrinth of creeks and small
sheets of water, which form a network in the
marshes between the sandy beach-islands and
the mainland all the way to Cape Fear River.
The Core Sound sheet of the United States
Coast Survey ended at Cape Lookout, there be-
ing no charts of the route to Masonboro. I was
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 207

therefore now travelling upon local knowledge,


which proves usually a very uncertain guide.
In a cold rain the canoe reached the little vil-

lage of Swansboro, where the chief personage


of the place of two hundred inhabitants, Mr.
McLain, removed me from my temporary camp-
ing-place in an old house near the turpentine
distilleries into his own
comfortable quarters.
There are twenty mullet fisheries within ten
miles of Swansboro, which employ from fifteen
to eighteen men each. The pickled and dried
roe of this fish is shipped to Wilmington and to
Cincinnati. Wild-fowls abound, and the shoot-
ing excellent.
is The fishermen say flocks of
ducks seven miles in length have been seen on
the waters of Bogue Sound. Canvas-backs are
" "
called here, and they sell from
raft-ducks
twelve to twenty cents each. Wild geese bring
forty cents, and brant thirty.
The marsh-ponies feed upon the beaches, in
a half wild state, with the deer and cattle, cross
the marshes and swim the streams from the main-
land to the beaches in the spring, and graze there
until winter, when they collect in little herds,
and instinctively return to the piny woods of
the uplands. Messrs. Weeks and Taylor had
shot, while on a four-days' hunt up the White
Oak River, twenty deer. Captain H. D. Heady,
of Swansboro, informed me that the ducks and
geese he killed in one winter supplied him with
208 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

one hundred pounds of selected feathers. Cap-


tain Heady's description of Bogue Inlet was not

encouraging for the future prosperity of this


coast, and the same may be said of all the inlets
between it and Cape Fear.
Rainy weather kept me within doors until
Friday, the yth of January, when I rowed down
White Oak River Bogue Inlet, and turned
to
into thebeach thoroughfare, which led me three
miles and a half to Bear Inlet. My course now
lay through creeks among the marshes to the
Stand-Back, near the mainland, where the tides
between the two inlets head. Across this shoal

spot I traversed tortuous watercourses with mud


flats,from which beds of sharp raccoon oysters
projected and scraped the keel of my boat.
The sea was now approached from the main-
land to Brown's Inlet, where the tide ran like
a mill-race, swinging my canoe in great circles
as I crossed it to the lower side. Here I took
the widest thoroughfare, and left the beach only
to retrace my steps to follow one nearer the

strand, which conducted me to the end of the


natural system of watercourses, where I found a

ditch, dug seventy years before, which connected


the last system of waters with another series of
creeks that emptied their waters into New River
Inlet.

Emerging from the marshes, my course led


me away from New River Inlet, across open
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 209

sheets of water to the mainland, where Dr.


Ward's cotton plantation occupied a large and
cultivated area in the wilderness. It was nearly

two miles from his estate down to the inlet.


The intervening flats among the island marshes

of New River were covered with natural beds


of oysters, upon which the canoe scraped as I
crossed to the narrow entrance of Stump Sound.
Upon rounding a point of land I found, snugly

ensconced in a grove, the cot of an oysterman,


Captain Risley Lewis, who, after informing me
that his was the last habitation to be found in
that vicinity, pressed me
be his guest.
to
The next day proved one of trial to patience
and muscle. The narrow watercourses, which
like a spider's web
penetrate the marshes with
numerous small sheets of water, made travelling
a most difficult task. At times I was lost, again
my canoe was lodged upon oyster-beds in the
shallow ponds of water, the mud bottoms of
which would not bear my weight if I attempted
to get overboard to lighten the little craft.

Alligator Lake, two miles in width, was crossed


without seeing an alligator. Saurians are first
met with, as the traveller proceeds south, in the
vicinity of Alligator Creek and the Neuse River,
in the latitude of Pamplico Sound. During the
cold weather they hide themselves in the soft,
muddy bottoms of creeks and lagoons. All the
negroes, and many of the white people of the
2IO VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

south, assert, that when captured in his winter

bed, this huge reptile's stomach contains the hard


knot of a pine-tree; but for what purpose he
swallows it they are at a loss to explain.
In twelve miles of tortuous windings there
appeared but one sign of human life a little
cabin on a ridge of upland among the fringe
of marshes that bordered on Alligator Lake. It

was cheering a lonely canoeist to see this


to

house, and the clearing around it with the sea-


son's crop of corn in stacks dotting the field.
All this region is called Stump Sound; but that
sheet of water is a well-defined, narrow, lake-
like watercourse, which was entered not long
after I debouched from Alligator Lake. Stump
Inlet having closed up eighteen months before
my visit, the sound and its tributaries received
tidal water from New Topsail Inlet.
It was a cold and rainy evening when I
sought
shelter in an old boat-house, at a landing on

Topsail Sound, soon after leaving Stump Sound.


While preparing for the night's camp, the son
of the proprietor of the plantation discovered
the, tohim, unheard-of spectacle of a paper boat
upon the gravelly strand. Filled with curiosity
and delight, he dragged me, paddle in hand,
through an avenue of trees to a hill upon which
a large house was located. This was the boy's
home. Leaving me on the broad steps of the
veranda, he rushed into the hall, shouting to
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 211

"
the family, Here's a sailor who has come from
the north in a PAPER boat."
This piece of intelligence roused the good
people to merriment. "Impossible!" "A boat
made of paper " " Nonsense
! !
"

The boy, however, would not be put down.


"But it is made of paper, I tell you; for I

pinched it and stuck my nails into it," he re-


plied earnestly.
'
You are crazy, my boy, " some one re-
"
sponded; a paper boat never could go through
these sounds, the coon oysters would cut it in
pieces. Now
tell us, is the sailor made of
"
paper, like his boat?
"
Indeed, mother, what I tell you
true; and, is

I
O, forgot! here's the sailor on the steps, where
I left him." In an instant the whole family were
out upon the veranda. Seeing my embarrass-
ment, they tried, like well-bred people, to check
their merriment, while I explained to them the

way which
in the boy had captured me, and
proposed at once returning to my camp. To
this, however, they would not listen; and the

charming wife of the planter extended her hand


"
to me, as she said, No, sir, you will not go back
to the wet landing to camp. This is our home,
and though marauding armies during the late
war have taken from us our wealth, you must
share with us the little we have left." This lady
with her two daughters, who inherited her beauty
212 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

and grace of manner, did all in their power to


make me comfortable.
Sunday was the coldest day of the season; but
the family, whose hospitality I enjoyed, rode
seven miles through the woods, some on horse-
back, some in the carriage, to the little church
in a heavy pine forest. The next day proved
stormy, and the driving sleet froze upon the
trees and bound their limbs and boughs together
with an icy veneer. My host, Mr. McMillan,
kindly urged me to tarry. During my stay with
him I ascertained that he devoted his attention
to raising ground-peas, or peanuts. Along the
coast of this part of North Carolina this nut is
the chief product, and is raised in immense
quantities. The
latter state alone raises annually
over one hundred thousand bushels; while Vir-
ginia and Tennessee produce, some years, a crop
of seven hundred thousand bushels.
Wednesday opened with partially clearing
weather, and icy covering of the trees
the
yielded to the softening influences of a southern
wind. The family went to the landing to see
me off,and the kind ladies stowed many delica-
cies, made with their own hands, in th,e bow of
the After rowing a half-mile, I took a
boat.

lingering look at the shore, where those who


four days ago were strangers, now waved an
adieu as friends. They had been stript of their
wealth, though the kind old planter had never
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 213

raised his hand against the government of his


fathers. This family, like thousands of people
in the south, had suffered for the rash deeds of
others. While the political views of this gentle-
man differed from those of the stranger from
Massachusetts, it formed no barrier to their
social intercourse, and did not make him forget
to exhibit the warm feelings of hospitality which
so largely influence the Southerner. I went to

him, as a traveller in search of truth, upon an


honest errand. Under such circumstances a
Northerner does not require a letter of introduc-
tion to nine out of ten of the citizens of the
fifteen ex-slave states, which cover an area of
eight hundred and eighty thousand square miles,
and where fourteen millions of people desire to
be permitted to enjoy the same privileges as the
Constitution of the United States guarantees to
all the states north of Mason and Dixon's line.

From Sloop Landing, on my new friends'


plantation, to New Topsail Inlet I had a brisk
row of Vessels drawing eight feet of
five miles.
water can reach this landing from the open sea
upon a full tide. The sea was
rolling in at this
ocean door as my canoe crossed it to the next
marsh thoroughfare, which connected it with
Old Topsail Inlet, where the same monotonous
surroundings of sand-hills and marshes are to be
found.
The next tidal opening was Rich Inlet, which
214 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

had a strong ebb running through it to the


sea. From it I threaded the thoroughfares up
"
to themainland, reaching at dusk the Emma
Nickson Plantation." The creeks were growing
more shallow, and near the bulkhead, or middle-
ground, where tides from two inlets met, there
was so little water and so many oyster reefs, that,
without a chart, the route grew more and more
perplexing in character. It was a distance of
thirty miles to Cape Fear, and twenty miles
to New Inlet, w hich was one of the mouths
T

of Cape Fear River. From the plantation to


New Inlet, the shallow interior sheets of water
with their marshes were called Middle, Mason-
boro, and Myrtle sounds. The canoe could
have traversed these waters end of Myr-
to the
tle Sound, which is separated from Cape Fear

River by a strip of land only one mile and a


half wide, across which a portage can be made
to the river. Barren and Masonboro are the only
inlets which supply the three little sounds above
mentioned with water, after Rich Inlet is passed.
The coast from Cape Fear southward eighty
miles, to Georgetown, South Carolina, has several
small inlets through the beach, but there are no
interior waters parallel with the coast in all that

distance, which can be of any service to the


canoeist for a coast route. It therefore became
necessary for me to follow the next watercourse
that could be utilized for reaching Winyah Bay,
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 215

which is theentrance to the system of con-


first

tinuous watercourses south of Cape Fear.


The Nickson Plantation hid the
trees of the
house of the proprietor from view; but upon
beaching my canoe, a drove of hogs greeted me
with friendly grunts, as if the hospitality of their
master infected the drove; and, as it grew dark,
they trotted across the field, conducting me up
to the very doors of the planter's home, where

Captain Mosely, late of the Confederate army,


gave me a soldier's hearty welcome.
" "
The war is over," he said, and any northern
gentleman is welcome to what we have left."
Until midnight, this keen-eyed, intelligent officer
entertained me with a flow of anecdotes of the
war times, his hair-breadth escapes, &c.; the
conversation being only interrupted when he
paused to pile wood upon the fire, the chimney-

place meantime glowing like a furnace. He


told me
that Captain Maffitt, of the late Confed-
erate navy, lived at Masonboro, on the sound;
and that had I called upon him, he could have
furnished, as an old officer of the Coast Survey,
much valuable geographical information. This
pleasant conversation was at last interrupted
by the wife of my host, who warned us in her
courteous way of the lateness of the hour. With
a good-night to my host, and a sad farewell
to the sea, I prepared myself for the morrow's

journey.
2l6 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

CHAPTER XI.

FROM CAPE FEAR TO CHARLESTON, SOUTH


CAROLINA.

A PORTAGE TO LAKE WACCAMAW. THE SUBMERGED SWAMPS.


NIGHT AT A TURPENTINE DISTILLERY. A DISMAL WILDER-
NESS. OWLS AND MISTLETOE. CRACKERS AND NEGROES.
ACROSS THE SOUTH CAROLINA LINE. A CRACKER'S IDEA OF
HOSPITALITY. POT BLUFF. PEEDEE RIVER. GEORGETOWN.
WINYAH BAY. THE RICE PLANTATIONS OF THE SANTEE
RIVERS. A NIGHT WITH THE SANTEE NEGROES. ARRIVAL
AT CHARLESTON.

reach my next point of embarkation a


TO portage was necessary. Wilmington was
twelve miles distant, and I reached the railroad
station of that city with my canoe packed in a
bed of corn-husks, on a one-horse dray, in time
to take the evening train to Flemington, on Lake
Waccamaw. The polite general freight-agent,
Mr. A. Pope, allowed my canoe to be transported
in the passenger baggage-car, where, as it had
no covering, I was obliged to steady it during
the ride of thirty-two miles, to protect it from
the friction caused by the motion of the train.
Mr. Pope quietly telegraphed to the few families
at the lake, "Take care of the paper canoe; " so
when my destination was reached, kind voices
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 2 17

greeted through the darkness and offered me


me
the hospitalities of Mrs. Brothers' home-like inn
at the Flemington Station. After Mr. Carroll had

conveyed the boat to his storehouse, we all sat


down to tea as sociably as though we were old
friends.
On the morrow we carried the Maria Theresa
on our shoulders to the little lake, out of which
the long and crooked river with its dark cypress
waters flowed to the sea. A son of Mr. Short,
a landed proprietor who holds some sixty thou-
sand acres of the swamp lands of the Waccamaw,
escorted me in his yacht, with a party of ladies
and gentlemen, five miles across the lake to my
point of departure. was now noon, and our
It

little party picnicked under the lofty trees which

rise from the low shores of Lake Waccamaw.


A little later we said our adieu, and the paper

canoe shot into the whirling current which rushes


out of the lake through a narrow aperture into
a great and dismal swamp. Before leaving the
party, Mr. Carroll had handed me a letter ad-
dressed to Mr. Hall, who was in charge of a
"
turpentine distillery on my route. It is twenty

miles by the river to my friend Hall's," he said,


"but in a straight line the place is just four
miles from here." Such is the character of the
Waccamaw, this most crooked of rivers.
I had never been on so rapid and continuous
a current. As it whirled me along the narrow
2l8 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

watercourse I was compelled to abandon my


oars and use the paddle in order to have my face
to the bow, as the abrupt turns of the stream
seemed to wall me in on every side. Down
the tortuous, black, rolling current went the
paper canoe, with a giant forest covering the
great swamp and screening me from the light
of day. The swamps were submerged, and as
the water poured out of the thickets into the
river it would shoot across the land from one
bend to another, presenting in places the mysti-

fying spectacle of water running up stream, but


not up an inclined plain. Festoons of gray
Spanish moss hung from the weird limbs of
monster trees, giving a funeral aspect to the
gloomy forest, while the owls hooted as though
it were
night. The creamy, wax-like berries
of the mistletoe gave a Druidical aspect to the
woods, for this parasite grew upon the branches
of many trees.
One spot only of firm land rose from the water
in sixteen miles of paddling from the lake, and
passing it, I went flying on with the turbulent
stream four miles further, to where rafts of logs
blocked the river, and the sandy banks, covered
with the upland forest of pines, encroached upon
the lowlands. This was Old Dock, with its
turpentine distillery smoking and sending out
resinous vapors.
Young Mr. Hall read my letter and invited
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 219

me to his temporary home, which, though


roughly built of unplaned boards, possessed two
comfortable rooms, and a large fireplace, in
which light-wood, the terebinthine heart of the
pine-tree, was cheerfully blazing.
I had made the twenty miles in three hours,

but the credit of this quick time must be given


to the rapid current. My host did not seem
well pleased with the solitude imposed upon
him. His employers had sent him from Wil-
mington, to hold and protect "their turpentine
farm," which was a wilderness of trees covering
four thousand and was valued, with its
acres,
distillery, at five thousand dollars. An old
negro, who attended the still and cooked the
meals, was his only companion.
We had finished our frugal repast, when a
man, shouting in the darkness, approached the
house on horseback. This individual, though
very tipsy, represented Law and Order in that
district, as I was informed when "Jim Gore," a

justice of the peace, saluted me in a boisterous


manner. Seating himself by the fire, he ear-
nestly inquired for the bottle. His stomach, he
said, was as dry as a lime-kiln, and, though wa-
ter answers to slake lime, he demanded some-

thing stronger to slake the fire that burned with-


in him. He was very suspicious of me when
Hall told him of my canoe journey. After
eying me from head to toe in as steady a manner
220 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

as he was capable of, he broke forth with: "Now,


stranger, this won't do. What are ye a-travel-

ling in this sort of way for, in a paper dug-out?"


pleaded a strong desire to study geography,
I

but the wise fellow replied :

"Geography! geography!' Why, the fellers


who rite geography never travel; they stay at
home and spin their yarns 'bout things they
never sees." Then, glancing at his poor butter-
nut coat and pantaloons, he felt my blue woollen
suit, and continued, in a slow, husky voice:
"
Stranger, them clothes cost something ; they
be store-clothes. That paper dug-out cost money,
I tell ye; and it costs something to travel the hull

length of the land. No, stranger; if ye be not


on a bet, then somebody's a-paying ye -well for it."
For an hour I entertained this roughest of law
dignitaries with an account of my long row, its
trials and its pleasures. He became interested
in the story, and finally related to me his own

aspirations, and the difficulties attending his ef-


forts to make the piny-woods people respect the
laws and good government. He then described
the river route through the swamps to the sea,
and, putting his arm around me in the most affec-
tionate manner, he mournfully said:
"O
stranger, my heart is with ye; but O, how
ye will have to take it when ye go past those
awful wretches to-morrow; how they will give
it to ye! They most knocked me off my raft,
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 221

last time I went to Georgetown. Beware of


them; I warn ye in time. Dern the hussies."
Squire Jim so emphasized the danger that I
became somewhat alarmed, for, more than any-
thing else, I dreaded an outbreak with rough
women. And then, too, my new acquaintance
informed me that there were four or five of these
wretches, of the worst kind, located several
miles down the stream. As I was about to in-

quire into the habits of^hese ugly old crones,


Mr. Hall, wishing to give Squire James a hint,
remarked that Mr. B
might at any time re-
tire to the next room, where half the bed was at
his disposal.
"
Half the bed!" roared the squire; "here
"
are three of us, and where's half? my
"Why, squire," hesitatingly responded my
"
host, Mr. B is
my guest, and having but
one bed, he must have half'of it no less."
"Then what's to become of me?" thundered
his Majesty of the law.
Having been informed that a shake-down
would have been ready had he given notice of
his visit, and that at some future time, when not
so crowded, he could be entertained like a gen-

tleman, he drew himself up, wrapped in the


mantle of dignity, and replied:
"None of that soft talk, my friend. This
man is a traveller; let him take travellers'
luck three in a bed to-night. I'm bound
222 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

to sleep with him to-night. Hall, where's the


bottle?"
I now back room, and, without
retired to the

undressing, planted myself on the side of the


bed next the wall. Sleep was, however, an un-
attainable luxury, with the squire's voice in the
next room, as he told how the country was going
"
to the dogs, because niggers and white folks
wouldn't respect the laws. It took half a man's
time to larn it to 'em, and much thanks he ever
got by setting everybody to rights." He wound
up by lecturing Hall for being so temperate,
his diligent search in all directions for bottles or

jugs being rewarded by finding them filled with


unsatisfactory emptiness.
He then tumbled into the centre of the bed,
crowding me
close against the wall. Poor Hall,
having the outside left to him, spent the night in
exercising his brain and muscles in vain attempts
tokeep bed; for when his Majesty of the
in his
law put arms akimbo, the traveller went to
his
the wall, and the host to the floor. Thus passed
my first night in the great swamps of the Wac-
camaw River.
The negro cook gave us an early breakfast of
bacon, sweet potatoes, and corn bread. The
squire again looked round for the bottle, and
again found nothing but emptiness. He helped
me canoe along the unsteady footing
to carry my
of the dark swamp to the lower side of the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 223

raftof logs, and warmly pressed my hand as he


"
whispered.: My dear B I shall think of ,

you untilyou get past those dreadful wretches.'


Keep an eye on your little boat, or they'll devil
you."
Propelled by my double paddle, the canoe
seemed to fly through the great forest that rose
with its tall trunks and weird, moss-draped
arms, out of the water. The owls were still
hooting. Indeed, the dolorous voice of this bird
of darkness sounded through the heavy woods
at throughout the day. I seemed to
intervals
have the real world behind me, and to have
left

entered upon a landless region of sky, trees, and


water.
"
Beware of the cut-offs," said Hall, before I
"
left. Only the Crackers and shingle-makers
know them. If followed, they would save you
many a mile, but every opening through the
swamp is not a cut-off. Keep to the main
stream, though it be more crooked and longer.
If you take to the cut-offs, you may get into

passages that will lead you off into the swamps


and into interior bayous, from which you will
never emerge. Men have starved to death in
such places."
So I followedwinding stream, which
the
turned back upon itself, running north and south,
and east and west, as if trying to box the com-
pass by following the sun in its revolution. After
224 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

paddling down one bend, I could toss a stick


through the trees into the stream where the canoe
had cleaved its waters a quarter of a mile be-
hind me.
The thought of what I should do in this land-
less region if my frail shell, in its rapid flight to
the sea, happened to be pierced by a snag, was,
to say the least, not a comforting one. On what
could I stand to
repair it? To climb a tree
seemed, in such a case, the only resource; and
then what anxious waiting there would be for
some cypress-shingle maker, in his dug-out ca-
noe, to come to the rescue, and take the traveller
from his dangerous lodgings between heaven and
earth; or it might be that no one would pass that
way, and the weary waiting would be even unto
death.
But sounds now reached my ears that made
me feel that I was not
quite alone in this desolate
swamp. The gray squirrels scolded among the
tree-tops; robins, the brown thrush, and a large
black woodpecker with his bright red head,
each reminded me of Him without whose notice
not a sparrow falleth to the ground.
Ten miles of this black current were passed
over, when the first signs of civilization appeared,
in the shape of a sombre-looking, two-storied
house, located upon a point of the mainland
which entered the swamp on the' left shore of
the river. At this point the river widened to five
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 225

or six rods, and at intervals land appeared a few


inches above the water. Wherever the pine
land touched the river a pig-pen of rails offered
shelter and
a gathering-place for the hogs,
which turned
are loose by the white Cracker
to feed upon the roots and mast of the wilder-
ness.
Reeve's Ferry, on the right bank, with a little
store and turpentine-still, twenty miles from Old
Dock, was the next sign of the presence of man
in this swamp. f The river now became broad as
I approached Piraway Ferry, which is two miles

below Piraway Farm. Remembering the warn-


"
ings of the squire as to the awful wretches in
the big pine woods," I kept a sharp lookout for
the old women who were to give me so much
trouble, but the raftsmen on the river explained
that though Jim Gore had told me the truth, I
had misunderstood his pronunciation of the word
reaches, or river bends, which are called in
this vicinity 'wretches. The reaches referred to

by Mr. Gore were so long and straight as to


afford open passages for wind to blow up them,
and these fierce gusts of head winds give the
raftsmen much trouble while poling their rafts

against them.
My fears of ill treatment were now at rest, for

my tiny craft, with her sharp-pointed bow, was


well adapted for such work. Landing at the
ferry where a small scow or flat-boat was resting
226 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

upon the firm land, the ferryman, Mr. Daniel


Dunkin, would not permit me to camp out of
doors while his log-cabin was only one mile
away on the pine-covered uplands. He told me
that the boundary-line between North and South
Carolina crossed this swamp three and a half
miles below Piraway Ferry, and that the first
town on the river Waccamaw, in South Carolina,
Conwayborough, was a distance of ninety miles
by river and only thirty miles by land. There
was but one bridge over the river, from its head
to Conwayborough, and it was built by Mr.

James Wortham, twenty years before, for his


plantation. This bridge was twenty miles below
Piraway, and from it by land to a settlement on
Little River, which empties into the Atlantic,
was a distance of only five miles. A short canal
would connect this river and its lumber regions
with Little River and the sea.
For the first time in my experience as a trav-
eller I had entered a country where the miles
were short. When fifteen years old I made my
first journey alone and on foot from the vicinity

of Boston to the White Mountains of New


Hampshire. This boyish pedestrian trip occu-
pied about twenty-one days, and covered some
three hundred miles of hard tramping. New
England gives honest measure on the finger-
posts along her highways. The traveller learns

by well-earned experience the length of her


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 227

miles; but in the wilderness of the south there


is no standard of five thousand two hundred and

eighty feet to a statute mile, and the watermen


along the sea-coast are ignorant of the fact that
one-sixtieth of a degree of latitude (about six
thousand and eighty feet) is the geographical
and nautical mile of the cartographer, as well
"
as the knot" of the sailor.

At Piraway Ferry no two of the raftsmen and


lumbermen, ignorant or educated, would give the
same distance, either upon the lengths of surveyed
roads or unmeasured rivers. " It is one hundred
and by river from Piraway Ferry
sixty-five miles
to Conwayborough," said one who had travelled
the route for years. The most moderate estimate
made was that of ninety miles by river. The
reader, therefore, must not accuse me of over-
stating distances while absent from the seaboard,
as my friends of the Coast Survey Bureau have
not yet penetrated into these interior regions with
their theodolites, plane-tables, and telametre-
rods. To the canoeist, who is ambitious to score
up miles instead of collecting geographical notes,
these wild rivers afford an excellent opportunity
to satisfy his aims.
From sixty to eighty miles can be rowed in
ten hours as easily as forty miles can be gone
over upon a river of slow current in the nor-
thern states. There is, I am sorry to say,
a class of American travellers who " do" all the
228 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

capitals of Europe in the same business-like way,


and if they have anything to say in regard to
every-day life in the countries through which
they pass, they forget to thank the compiler of
the guide-book for the information they possess.
There was but one room in the cabin of my
new acquaintance, who
represented that class of
piny- woods people called in the south because
they subsist largely upon corn, Corn Crackers,
"
or Crackers. These Crackers are the poor white
folks
"
of the planter, and " de white trash " of
the old slave, who now as a freedman is begin-
ning to feel the responsibility of his position.
These Crackers are a very kind-hearted people,
but few of them can read or write. The children
of the negro, filled with curiosity and a new-
born pride, whenever opportunity permits, at-
tend the schools in large numbers; but the very
indolent white man seems to be destitute of all
ambition, and his children, in many places in the
south, following close in the father's footsteps,
grow up in an almost unimaginable ignorance.
The news of the arrival of the little Maria
Theresa Piraway Ferry spread with astonish-
at

ing rapidity through the woods, and on Sunday,


"
after de shoutings," as the negroes call their
meetings, were over, the blacks came in num-
bers to see " dat Yankee-man's paper canno."
These simple people eyed me from head to foot
with a grave sort of curiosity, their great mouths
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 229

open, displaying pearly teeth of which a white


man might well be proud. "You is a good man,
capt'n we knows dat," they said; and when I
asked why, the answer showed their childlike
faith. 'Cause you couldn't hab come all dis
'*

way in a paper boat if de Lord hadn't helped


you. He dono help only good folks."
The Cracker also came with his children to
view the "wonder, while the raftsmen were so
struck with the advantages of my double paddle,
which originated with the inhabitants of the
Arctic regions, that they laid it
upon a board and
drew its outlines with chalk. They vowed they
would introduce it upon the river.
These Crackers declared it would take more
than " de
shoutings," any other religious
or
service, to improve the moral condition of
the blacks. They openly accused the colored
preachers of disturbing the nocturnal rest of
theirhens and turkeys; and as to hog-stealing
and cow-killing, "Why, we won't have any crit-
ters left ef this carpet-bag government lasts much
"
longer! they feelingly exclaimed.
"We does nothing to nobody. We lets the
niggers alone; but niggers will steal they can't
help it, the poor devils; it's in 'em. Now, ef they
eats us out of house and home, what can a poor
man do? They puts 'em up for justices of peace,
and sends 'em to the legislature, when they can't
read more'n us; and they do say it's 'cause we
230 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

fit Confederate sarvice that they razes the


in the

nigger over our heads. Now, does the folkes up


north like to see white people tyrannized over
by niggers? Jes tell 'em when you go back,
stranger, that we's got soulds like yours up
north,and we's got feelings too, by thunder! jes
like otherwhite men. This was a white man's
country once now it's all niggers and dogs.
Why, them niggers in the legislature has spit-
boxes lined with gold to spit in! What's this
country a-coming to? We
wish the niggers no
harm if they lets our hogs and chickens alone."
After this tirade it was amusing to see how
friendly the whites and blacks were. The Crack-
ers conversed with these children of Ham, who
had been stealing their hams for so long a time,
in the most kindly way, realizing, perhaps, that

they had various peculiar traits of their own, and


must, after all, endure their neighbors.
A traveller should place facts before his read-

ers,and leave to them the drawing of the moral.


Northern men and women who go to the south-
ern states and reside for even the short space of
a year or two, invariably change their life-long
views and principles regarding the negro as a
moral and social creature. When these people
return to their homes in Maine or Massachusetts
(as did the representatives of the Granges of the
northern states after they had visited South Caro-
lina in 1875) a new light, derived from contact
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 23!

with facts, dawns upon them, while their sur-


prised and untravelled neighbors say: "60 you
have become Southern in your views. I never
would have thought that of you"
The railroad has become one of the great me-
diums of enlightenment to mankind, and joins in
a social fraternity the disunited elements of a
country. God grant that the resources of the
great South may soon be developed by the capi-
tal and free labor of the North. Our sister states

of the South, exhausted by the struggles of the


late war which resulted in consolidating more

firmly than ever the great Union, are now ready


to receive every honest effort to develop their
wealth or cultivate their territory. Let every
national patriot give up narrowness of views and
sectional selfishness and become acquainted with
(not the politicians) the people of the New
South, and a harmony of feeling will soon pos-
sess the hearts of all true lovers of a government
of the people.
The swamp tributaries were swelling the river
into a very rapid torrent as I paddled away from
the ferry on Monday, January 18. A
warmer
latitude having been reached, I could dispense
with one blanket, and this I had presented to my
kind host, who had refused to accept payment
for his hospitality. He was very proud of his
"
present, and said, feelingly, No one shall touch
this but me." His good wife had baked some
232 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

of a rich and very nice variety of sweet-potatoes,


unlike those we get in New Jersey or the other
Middle States which potatoes she kindly added
to my They are not dry or mealy
stores. when
cooked, but seem saturated with honey. The
poor woman's gift now occupied the space for-
merly taken up by the blanket I had given her
husband.
From this day, as latitude after latitude was
crossed on my way southward, I distributed
every article I could spare, among these poor,
kind-hearted people. Mr. Macgregor went in
his Rob Roy canoe over the rivers of Europe,
"
diffusing cheerfulness and distributing Evangel-
ical tracts." I had no room for tracts, and if I
had followed the example of my well-inten-
tioned predecessor in canoeing, it would have
served the cause of truth or creed but little.
The Crackers could not read, and but few of
the grown negroes had been taught letters.
They did not want books, but tobacco. Men
and women hailed me from the banks as I glided
"
along my canoe, with, Say, captain, hab you
in

eny 'bacca or snuff for dis chile?" Poor hu-


manity! The Cracker and the freedman fill
alike their places according to the light they
possess. Do we, who have been taught from
our youth sacred things, do more than this?
Do we love our neighbor as ourself ?
For twenty miles (local authority) I journeyed
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 233

down the stream, without seeing a human being


or a dwelling-place, to Stanley's house and the

bridge 5 from which I urged the canoe thirty-five


miles further, passing an old field on a bluff,
when darkness settled on the swamps, and a

heavy mist rose from the waters and enveloped


the forests in its folds. With not a trace of land
above water I groped about, running into what

appeared be
to openings in the submerged land,
only to find my canoe tangled in thickets. It
was useless to go further, and I prepared to
ascend to the forks of a giant tree, with a light
rope, to be used for lashing my body into a safe
position, when a long, low cry engaged my at-
tention.
r?

Waugh! ho! ho! ho! peig peig pe-ig


pe-ig," came through the still, thick air. It was
not an owl, nor a catamount that cried thus; nor
was it the bark of a fox. It was the voice of a
Cracker calling in his hogs from the forest.
This sound was indeed pleasant to my ears,
for I knew the upland was near, and that a
warm fire awaited my benumbed limbs in the
cabin of this unknown man. Pushing the canoe
towards the sound, and feeling the submerged
border of the swamp with my paddle, I struck
the upland where it touched the water, and dis-

embarking, felt my way along a well-trodden


Here a drove of hogs
path to a little clearing.
were crowding around their owner, who was
234 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

scattering kernels of corn about him as he vo-


"
ciferated, pe-ig pe-ig pe-ig pig pig
pig." Westood face to face, yet neither could
see the face of the other in the darkness. I told

my tale, and asked where I could find a sheltered


spot to camp.
" t?
Stranger," slowly replied the Cracker, my
cabin 's close at hand. Come home with me.
It's a bad night for a man to lay out in; and the
niggers would steal your traps if they knew you
had anything worth taking. Come with me."
In the tall pines near at hand was a cabin of

peeled rails, the chinks between them being


stuffed with moss. A roof of cypress shingles
kept the rain out. The log chimney, which was
plastered with mud, was built outside of the
w alls
r
and against an end of the rustic-looking
structure. The wide-mouthed fireplace sent
forth a blaze of light as we entered the poor
man's home. I saw in the
nicely swept floor,
the clean bed-spreads, and the general neatness
of the place, the character of Wilson Edge's
wife.
"
Hog and hominy 's our food here in the piny
woods," said Mr. Edge, as his wife invited us to
"
the little table; and we've a few eggs now and
then to eat with sweet potatoes, but it's up-hill
work to keep the niggers from killing every fowl
and animal we have. The carpet-bag politicians
promised them everyone, for his vote, forty acres
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 235

of land and a mule. They sed as how the


northern government was a-going to give it to
urn; but the poor devils never got any thanks
even for their votes. They had been stuffed
with all sorts of notions by the carpet-baggers,
and I don't blame um for putting on airs and
trying to rule us. It's human natur, that's all.

We don't blame the niggers half so much as


those who puts it in their heads to do so; but it's

hard times we've had, we poor woods folks.


They took our children for the cussed war, to
fight fur niggers and rich people as owned um.
"
We never could find out what all the fuss
was about; but when Jeff Davis made a law to
exempt every man from the army who owned
niggers, then our blood riz right up,
fifteen
and we sez to our neighbors, This ere thing's r

a-getting to be a rich man's quarrel and a poor


man's fight.' After oft" my
all boy
they dragged
toChambersburg, Pennsylvania, and killed him
a fighting for what? Why, for rich nigger
owners. Our young men
hid in the swamps,
but they were hunted up and forced into the
army. Niggers has been our ruin. Ef a white
man takes a case before a nigger justice, he
gives the nigger everything, and the white man
has to stand one side. Now, would you folks up
north like to have a nigger justice who can't
read nor count ten figgurs?"
I tried to comfort the poor man, by assuring
236 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

him that outside of the political enemies of our


peace, the masses in the north were honestly
inclined towards the south now that slavery
was an end; and that wrong could not long
at

prevail, with the cheerful prospect of a new


administration, and the removal of all unconsti-
tutional forces that preyed upon the south.
The two beds in the single room of the cabin
were occupied by the family; while I slept upon
the floor by the lire, with my blankets for a
couch and a roll of homespun for a pillow,
which the women called " heading" They
"
often said, Let me give you some heading for
your bed." We
waited until eight o'clock the
next day for the mists to from the swamps.
rise

My daily trouble was now upon me. How could


I remunerate a southerner for his cost of keep-

ing me, when not, in the true sense of the word,


an invited guest to his hospitality?
Wilson Edge sat by the fire, while his wife
and ones were preparing to accompany me
little
"
to see the paper boat. Mr. Edge," I stam-
w me with great kind-
mered, you have treated

ness, your wife has been put to some inconven-


ience, as I came in so unexpected a manner, and
you will really oblige me if you will accept a
little money for all this; though money cannot
pay for your hospitality. Grant my wish, and
you will send me away with a light heart."
The poor Cracker lowered his head and slowly
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 237

ran his fingers through his coal black hair. For


a moment he seemed studying a reply, and then
he spoke as though HE represented the whole
generous heart of the south.
*
^Stranger" he slowly articulated, Stranger,
I have known white men to be niggers enough
to take a stranger's money for lodgings and
vittles, but I am not that man"
We found the canoe as it had been left the
night before, and I was soon pulling down the
river. The great wilderness was traversed thirty
miles to the county town of Conwayborough,
where the negroes roared with laughter at the
working of the double paddle, as I shot past the
landing-place wherecotton and naval stores
were piled, waiting tobe lightered nine miles to
Pot Bluff, so called from the fact of a pot

being lost from a vessel near it, which place


is reached by vessels from New York drawing

twelve feet of water. Though still a long dis-


tance from the ocean, I was beginning to feel its
tidal influences. At Pot Bluff, the landing and
comfortable home of its owner, Mr. Z. W. Du-
senberry, presented a pleasant relief after the
monotony of the great pine forests. This enter-
prising business man made my short stay a very
pleasant one.
Wednesday, January 2oth, was cold for this

latitude, and ice formed in thin sheets in the


water-pails. Twenty-two miles below Pot Bluff,
238 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

Bull Creek enters the Waccamaw from the Pee-


dee River. At the mouth of this connecting
watercourse is Tip Top, the first rice plantation
of the' Waccamaw. The Peedee and its sister
stream run an almost parallel course from Bull
Creek to Winyah Bay, making their debouchure
close to the city of Georgetown. Steam saw-
mills and rice plantations take the place of the
forests from a few miles below Tip Top to the

vicinity of Georgetown.
Mr. M. L. Blakely, of New York, one of the
largest shingle manufacturers of the south, occu-
pied as his headquarters the Bates Hill Planta-
tion, on the Peedee.This gentleman had invited
me, through the medium of the post-office, to
visit him in the rice-growing regions of South
Carolina. To reach his home I took the short
"cut-off" which Bull Creek offered, and entered
upon the strongest of head-currents. The thick,
yellow, muddy torrent of the Peedee rushed
through Bull Creek with such volume, that I
wondered if it left much water on the other side,
to give character to the river, as it followed its
own channel to Winyah Bay.
One and a half miles of vigorous paddling
brought me to a branch of the watercourse,
which is much narrower than the main one, and
is consequently called Little Bull Creek. This
also comes from the Peedee River, and its source
is nearer to the Bates Hill plantation than the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 239

main Bull Creek. To urge the canoe up this


narrow stream three miles and a half to the
parent river Peedee, was a most trying ordeal.
At times the boat would not move a hundred
feet in five minutes, and often, as my strength
seemed failing me, I caught the friendly branches
of trees, and held on to keep the canoe from
being whirled down the current towards the
Waccamaw. After long and persistent efforts
had exhausted my strength, I was about to seek
for a resting-place in the swamp, when a view
of the broad Peedee opened before me, and with
vigorous strokes of the paddle the canoe slowly
approached the mighty current. A
moment
more and it was within its grasp, and went flying
down the turbulent stream at the rate of ten
miles an hour.
A loud halloo greeted me from the swamp,
where a party of negro shingle-makers were at
work. They manned their boat, a long cypress

dug-out, and followed me. Their employer, who


proved to be the gentleman whose abiding-place
I was now
rapidly approaching, sat in the stern.
We landed together before the old plantation-
house, which had been occupied a few years
before by members of the wealthy and powerful
rice-planting aristocracy of the Peedee, but was
now the temporary home of a northern man,
who was busily employed in guiding the labors
240 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

of his four hundred freedmen in the swamps of


North and South Carolina.
The paper canoe had now entered the regions
of the rice-planter. Along the low banks of the
Peedee were diked marshes where, before the
civil war, each estate produced from five thou-
sand to forty thousand bushels of rice annually,
and the lords of rice were more powerful than
those of cotton, though cotton was king. The
rich lands here produced as high as fifty-five
bushels of rice to the acre, under forced slave
labor; now the free blacks cannot wrest from
nature more than twenty-five or thirty bushels.
Fine old mansions lined the river's banks, but
the families had been so reduced by the ravages
of war, that I saw refined ladies, who had been
educated in the schools of Edinburgh, Scotland,
overseeing the negroes as they worked in the
yards of the rice-mills. The undaunted spirit of
these southern ladies, as they worked in their
homes now so desolate, roused my admiration.
A light, graceful figure, enveloped in an old

shawl, and mounted on an old horse, flitted about


one plantation like a restless spirit.
"
That lady's father," said a gentleman to me,
"owned three plantations, worth three millions
of dollars, before the war. There is a rice-mill
on one of the plantations which cost thirty thou-
sand dollars. She now fights against misfortune,
and will not give up. The Confederate war
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 241

would not have lasted six months if it had not


been for our women. They drove thousands of
us young men into the fight; and now, having
lost all,
they go bravely to work, even taking the
places of their old servants in their grand old
homes. It's hard for them, though, I assure
you."
On Tuesday, January 25th, paddled down the
I

Peedee, stopping at the plantations of Dr. Wes-


ton and Colonel Benjamin Allston. The latter
gentleman was a son of one of the governors of
South Carolina. He kindly gave me a letter of
introduction to Commodore Richard Lowndes,
who lived near the coast. From the Peedee I
passed through a cut in the marshes into the
broad Waccamaw, and descended it to Winyah
Bay.
Georgetown is located between the mouths of
the Peedee and Sampit rivers. Cautiously ap-
proaching the city, I landed at Mr. David Ris-
ley's steam saw-mills, and that gentleman kindly
secreted my boat in a back counting-room, while
I went up townto visit the post-office. By some,
to me, unaccountable means, the people had
heard of the arrival of the paper boat, and three
elaborately dressed negro women accosted me
with, "Please show wees tree ladies de little
paper boat:"
Before I had reached my destination, the post-
office, a body of men met me, on their way to
16
242 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the steam-mill. The crowd forced me back to


the canoe, and asked so many questions that I

was sorely taxed to find answers for these gen-


tlemen. There were three editors in the crowd:
two were white men, one a negro. The young
men, who claimed the position of representatives
of the spirit of the place and of the times, pub-
"
lished The Comet," while the negro, as though
influenced by a spirit of sarcasm, conducted
"
The Planet." The
third newspaper repre-
sented at the canoe reception was the " George-
town Times," which courteously noticed the
"
little boat that had come so far. The Planet "
prudently kept in the dark, and said nothing, but
"The Comet," representing the culture of the
young men of the city, published the following
notice of my arrival :

"
Tom Collins has at last arrived in his won-
derful paper boat. He
has it hitched to Mr.
Risley's new saw-mill, where every one can
have a view. He intends shooting off his six-
pounder before weighing anchor in the morning.
Hurrah for Collins."
I Mr. Risley's comfortable home before
left

noon the next day, and followed the shores of


Winyah Bay towards the sea. Near Battery
White, on the right shore, in the pine forests,
was the birth-place of Marion, the brave patriot
of the American revolution, whose bugle's call
summoned the youth of those days to arms.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 243

When near the inlet, the rice-plantation


marshes skirted the shore for some distance.
Out of these wet lands flowed a little stream,
called Mosquito Creek, which once connected
the North Santee River with Winyah Bay, and
served as a boundary to South Island. The
creek was very crooked, and the ebb-tide strong.
When more than halfway to Santee River I was
forced to leave the stream, as it had become
closed by tidal deposits and rank vegetation.
The ditches of rice plantations emptied their
drainage of the lowlands into Mosquito Creek.
Following a wide ditch to the right,
through fields
of rich alluvial soil, which had been wrested by
severe from nature, the boat soon reached
toil

the rice-mill of Commodore Richard Lowndes.


A little further on, and situated in a noble grove
of live-oaks, which were draped in the weird
festoons of Spanish moss, on the upland arose
the statelyhome of the planter, who still kept his
plantation in cultivation, though on a scale of less
magnitude than formerly. It was, indeed, a pleas-
ant evening that I passed in the company of the
refined members of the old commodore's house-
hold, and with a pang of regret the next day I
paddled along the main canal of the lowlands,
casting backward glances at the old house, with
its grand old trees. The canal ended at North
Santee Bay.
While I was preparing to ascend the river a
244 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

tempest arose, which kept me a weary prisoner


among the reeds of the rice marsh. The hollow
reeds made poor fuel for cooking, and when the
dark, stormy night shut down upon me, the damp
soil grew damper as the tide arose, until it threat-

ened to overflow the land. For hours I lay in my


narrow canoe waiting for the tidal flood to do its
worst, but it receded, and left me without any
means of building a fire, as the reeds were wet
by the storm. The nextafternoon, being tired
of this sort of prison-life, and cramped for lack
of exercise, I launched the canoe into the rough
water, and crossing to Crow Island found a lee
under itsshores, which permitted me to ascend
the river to the mouth of Atchison Creek, through
which I passed, two miles, to the South Santee
River.
All these rivers are bordered by rice planta-
tions, many of them having been abandoned to
the care of the freedmen. I saw no white men
upon them. Buildings and dikes are falling into
ruins, and the river freshets frequently inundate the
land. Many of the owners of these once valuable
estates are too much reduced in wealth to attempt
their proper cultivation. It is in any case dif-
ficult to get the freedmen to work through an
entire season, even when well paid for their ser-
vices, and they flock to the towns whenever
opportunity permits.
The North and South Santee rivers empty into
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 245

the Atlantic, but their entrances are so shallow


that Georgetown Entrance is the inlet through
which most of the produce of the country
pitch, tar, turpentine, rice, and lumber finds
exit to the sea. As I left the canal, which, with
the- creek, makes a complete thoroughfare for
lighters and small coasters from one Santee River
to the other, a renewal of the tempest made me
seek shelter an old cabin in a negro settlement,
in
each house of which was built upon piles driven
into the marshes. The old negro overseer of the
"
plantation hinted to me that
his hands were
berry spicious of ebbry stranger," and advised me
to row to some other locality. I told him I was

from the north, and would no't hurt even one of


the fleas which in multitudes infested his negroes'
quarters; but the old fellow shook his head, and
would not be responsible for me if I staid there
all night. A tall darkey, who had listened to the
"
conversation, broke in with, NOWT uncle, ye ,

knows dat if dis gemmum is from de norf he is


one of wees, and ye must du fur him jis dis
time." But " Uncle Overseer " kept repeating,
"
Some niggers here is mity spicious. Du not
no who white man is anyhow." Well, uncle,"
;t

"
replied the tall black, ef dis man is a Yankee-
mans, Ise will see himfroo."
Then he questioned me, while the fleas, hav-
ing telegraphed each
toother that a stranger had
arrived, made sad havoc of me and my patience.
246 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.
" "
My name's
"
Jacob Gilleu; what's yourn? I

gave it. Whar's your home?" came next. "I


am a citizen of the United States," I replied.
"
De 'Nited States whar's dat? neber hurd
him afore," said Jacob Gilleu. Having in-
formed him it was the land which General Grant
"
governed, he exclaimed O, you's a Grant man
:
;

all rite den; you is one of wees all de same as

wees. Den look a-here, boss. I send you to one


good place on Alligator Creek, whar Seba Gil-
lings libs. He black man, but he treat you jes
like white man."

Jacob helped me launch my boat through the


soft mud, which nearly stalled us; and following
his directions I paddled across the South Santee
and coasted down to Alligator Creek, where ex-
tensive marshes, covered by tall reeds, hid the

landscape from my view. About half a mile


from the mouth of the creek, which watercourse
was on my direct route to Bull's Bay, a large
tide-gate was found at the mouth of a canal.
This being wide open, I pushed up the canal to
a low point of land which rose like an island out
of the rushes. Here was a negro hamlet of a
dozen houses, or shanties, and the ruins of a
rice-mill. The majority of the negroes were
absent working within the diked enclosures of
which before the war had pro-
this large estate,
duced forty thousand bushels of rice annually.
Now the place was leased by a former slave,
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 247

and but little work was accomplished under the

present management.
Seba Gillings, a powerfully built negro, came
to the dike upon which I had landed the canoe.
I quickly told him my story, and how I had been
forced to leave the last negro quarters. I used

Jacob Gilleu's name as authority for seeking


shelter with him from the damps of the half-

submerged lands. The dignified black man bade


me " fear nuffing, stay here all de night, long's
you please; treat you like white man. Fse
mity poor, but gib you de berry best I hab."
He locked my boat a rickety old storehouse,
in

and gave me to understand


rt
dat niggers will
steal de berry breff from a man's moufF."
He took me to his home, and soon showed me
how he managed " de niggers." His wife sat
silently by the fire. He ordered her to " pound
de rice;" and she threw a quantity of unhulled
rice into a wooden mortar
three feet high planted
in theground of the shanty. Then, with
in front
an enormous, pestle, the black woman pounded
the grains until the hulls were removed, when,

seating herself upon the floor of the dark, smoky


cabin, she winnowed the rice with her breath,
while her long, slim fingers caught and removed
allthe specks of dirt from the mass. It was

cooked as the Chinese cook it not to a glu-


tinous mass, as we of the north prepare it but
each grain was dry and entire. Then eggs and
248 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

bacon were prepared not by the woman, but by


;

the son, a lad of fourteen years.


All these movements were superintended by
old Seba, who sat looking as dark and as solemn
and as learned as an associate judge on the
bench of a New Jersey county court. On the
blackest of tables, minus a cloth, the well-cooked
food was placed for the stranger. As soon as
my meal was finished, every member of the fam-
ily made a dash for the fragments, and the board
was cleared in awonderfully short space of time.
Then we gathered round the great, black-
mouthed fireplace, and while the bright coals of
live-oak spread a streak of light through the
darkness, black men and black women stole into
the room until everything from floor to ceiling,
from door to chimney-place, seemed to be grow-

ing blacker and blacker, and I felt as black as


my surroundings. The scant clothing of the
men only half covered their shiny, ebony skins.
The whole company preserved a dignified si-

lence, which was occasionally broken by deep


sighs coming from the women in reply to a half-
"
whispered All de way from de norf in a paper
"
canno bless de Lord! bless de Lord!
This dull monotony was broken by the en-
trance of a young negro who, having made a
passage in a sloop to Charleston through Bull's
Bay, was looked upon as a great traveller, and
to him were referred disputes upon nautical mat-
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 249

ters. He had not yet seen the boat, but he pro-


ceeded to tell the negroes present all about it.

He first bowed with a " How'dy, how'dy,


to me
cap'n," and then struck an attitude in the middle
of the floor. Upon this natural orator Seba Gil-
lings' dignity had no effect was he not a trav-
elled man?
His exordium was: " How fur you cum, sar?"
I
replied, about fourteen hundred miles. "Four-
"
teen hundred miles!" he roared; duz you
knows how much dat is, honnies? it's jes one
tousand four hundred miles." All the women
groaned out, "Bless de Lord! bless de Lord!"
and clapped their shrivelled hands. in ecstasy.
The little black tried to run his fingers through
his short, woolly hair as he continued: "What is
dis yere world a-coming to? Now, yous ere
folks, did ye's eber hear de likes o' dis a
paper boat?" To which the crones replied,
clapping their hands, "Bless de Lord! bless de
Lord! Only the Yankee-mens up norf can
make de paper boats. Bless de; Lord " !

" "
And
what," continued the orator, and what
will the Yankee-mens do next? Dey duz ebery
ting. Can dey bringman back agen? Can
a

dey bring a man back to bref?" "No! no!"


howled the women; "only de Lord can bring a
man back agen no Yankee-mens can do dat.
Bless de Lord bless de Lord " "And what sent
! !

dis Yankee-man one tousand four hundred miles


250 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.
"
in his paper boat?" De Lord! de Lord!
"
bless de Lord! shouted the now highly excited
women, violently striking the palms of their
hands together.
"And why," went on this categorical negro,
"did de Lord send him down souf in de -paper
boat?" "Kase he couldn't hab cum in de paper
boat ef de Lord hadn't a-sent him. O, bless de
Lord! bless de Lord! " "And what duz he call
his paper boat?" "Maria Theresa," I replied.
"
Maria Truss Her," cried the orator. " He calls
her Maria Truss Her. Berry good, berry good
name; kase he truss his life in her ebry day, and
dat's why he calls his little boat Truss Her.

Yes, de Yankee-mans makes de gunboats and


de paper boats. Has de gemmin from de norf
any bacca for dis yere chile?"
As the women had become very piously in-
clined, and were in just the state of nervous
excitement to commence " de shoutings," old
Uncle Seba rudely informed them that "de Yan-
kee-mans wants sleep," and cleared the room of
the crowd, to my great relief, for the state of the
atmosphere was beyond description. Seba had
a closet where he kept onions, muskrat skins,
and other pieces of personal property. He now
set his wife to sweeping it out, and I spread my
clean blankets with a sigh upon the black floor,
knowing I should carry away in the morning more
than I had brought into Seba's dwelling.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 25!

I will not now expatiate upon the small annoy-

ances of travel; but to the canoeist who may


follow the southern watercourses traversed by
"
the paper canoe, I would quietly say, Keep
away from cabins of all kinds, and you will by
so doing travel with a light heart and even

temper."
When I cast up my account with old Seba
the next morning, he said that by trading the
rice he raised he could obtain "bout ebbry ting
he wanted, 'cept rum." Rum was his medicine.
So long as he kept a little stowed away, he
admitted he was often sick. Having been desti-
tute of cash, and consequently of rum for some

time, he acknowledged his state of health re-


markable; and he was a model of strength and
manly development. All the other negroes were
dwarfish-looking specimens, while their hair was
so very short that it
gave them the appearance
of being bald.
When the canoe was taken out of the store-
house to be put into the canal, these half-naked,

ebony-skinned creatures swarmed about it like


bees. Not a trace of white blood could be de-
tected in them. Each tried to put a finger upon
the boat. They seemed to regard it as a Fetich ;

and, I believe, had it been placed upon an end


they would have bowed down and paid their
African devotions to it.
Only the oldest ones
could speak English well enough to be under-
252 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

stood. The youths chattered in African tongue,


and wore talismans about their necks. They
were, to say the verging on barbarism.
least,
The experience gathered among the blacks of
other lands impressed me with the well-founded
belief, that in more than one place in the south
would the African Fetich be up and wor-
set

shipped before long, unless the church bestirs


herself to look well to her home missions.
In all my travels, outside of the cities, in the
south it has not been my good fortune to find an
educated white man preaching
to negroes, yet

everywhere the poor blacks gather in the log-


cabin, or rudely constructed church, to listen to
ignorant preachers of their own color. The
blind leading the blind.
A few men of negro extraction, with white
blood in their veins, not any more negro than
white man, consequently not negroes in the true
sense of the word, are sent from the negro
colleges of the south to lecture northern congre-
gations upon the needs of their race] and these
one-quarter, or perhaps three-quarters, white
men are, with their intelligence, and sometimes
brilliant oratory, held up as true types of the

negro race by northerners; while there is, in

fact, as much difference between the pure-


blooded negro of the rice-field and this false
"
representative of his needs," as can well be

imagined.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 253

An Irishman, just from the old country, lis-


tened one evening to the fascinating eloquence
of a mulatto freedman. The good Irishman had
never seen a pure-blooded black man. The ora-
"
tor said, I am only half a black man. My
mother was a slave, my father a white planter."
"Be jabbers," shouted the excited Irishman,
who was charmed with the lecturer, " if you are
only half a nigger, what must a -whole one be
like!"
The blacks were kind and civil, as the}'' usually
are when fairly treated. They stood upon the
dike and shouted unintelligible farewells as I

descended the canal to Alligator Creek. This


thoroughfare soon carried me on its salt-water
current to the sea* for I missed a narrow en-
trance to the marshes, called the Eye of the
Needle (a steamboat thoroughfare), and found
myself upon the calm sea, which pulsated in
long swells. To the south was the low island
of Cape Roman, which, like a protecting arm,
guarded the quiet bay behind it. The marshes
extended from the main almost to the cape,
while upon the edge of the rushy meadows, upon
an island just inside of the cape, rose the tower
of Roman Light.
This was the first time my tiny shell had
floated upon the ocean. I coasted
the sandy
beach of the muddy lowlands, towards the light-
house, until I found a creek debouching from
254 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

the marsh, entered, and from one water-


which I

course to another, without a chart, found my


way at dusk into Bull's Bay. The sea was roll-
ing in and breaking upon the shore, which I was
forced to hug closely, as the old disturbers of my
peace, the porpoises, were visible, fishing in
numbers. To
escape dangerous raccoon
the

oyster reefs of the shoal water the canoe was


forced into a deeper channel, when the lively
porpoises chased the boat and drove me back
again on to the sharp-lipped shells. It was fast

growing dark, and no place of refuge nearer


than the upland, a long distance across the soft
marsh, which was even now wet with the sea.
The rough water of the sound, the oyster reefs
which threatened to pierce my boat, and a coast
which would be submerged by the next flood-
tide, all seemed to conspire against me. Sud-
denly my anxiety was relieved, and gratitude
filled my heart, as the tall masts of a schooner
rose out of the marshes not far from the upland,

telling me that a friendly creek was near at hand.


Its wide mouth soon opened invitingly before
me, and I rowed towards the beautiful craft
anchored in its current, the trim rig of which
plainly said the property of the United States.
An officer stood on the quarterdeck watching
my approach through his glass; and, as I was
passing the vessel, a sailor remarked to his
"
mates, That is the paper canoe. I was in Nor-
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 255

folk, last December, when it reached the Eliza-


beth River,"
The officer kindly hailedme, and offered me
the hospitality of the Coast-Survey schooner
"
Caswell." In the cosiest of cabins, Mr. W. H.
Dennis, with his co-laborers Messrs. Ogden and
Bond, with their interesting conversation soon
made me forget the discomforts of the last three
days spent in the muddy flats among the lowland
negroes. From poor, kind Seba Gillings' black
cabin-floor, to the neat state-room, snowy with its

sheets and clean towels, where fresh, pure water


could be used without stint, was indeed a transi-
tion. The party expected to complete their
work as far as Charleston harbor before the
season closed.
" "
The Sunday spent on the Caswell greatly
refreshed me. On Saturday evening Mr. Dennis
traced upon a sheet of paper my route through
the interior coast watercourses to Charleston
harbor; and I left the pretty schooner on Mon-
day, fully posted for my voyage. The tide com-
menced flooding at eleven A. M., and the flats,

soon afforded me water for their passage in the

vicinity of the shore. Heavy forests covered


the uplands, where a few houses were visible.
Bull's Island, with pines and a few cabbage palms,
was on my left as I reached the entrance of the

southern thoroughfare at the end of the bay.


Here, in the intricacies of creeks and passages
256 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

through the islands, and made careless by the


possession of Mr. Dennis' chart, I several times
blundered into the wrong course; and got no
further that afternoon than Price's Inlet, though
I rowed more than twenty miles. Some eight
miles of the distance rowed was lost by ascend-
ing and descending creeks by mistake.
After a Aveary day's work shelter was found
in a house close by the sea, on the shores of
Price's Inlet; where, in company with a young
fisherman, who was in the employ of Mr. Mag-
wood, of Charleston, I slept upon the floor in my
blankets. Charles Hucks, the fisherman, asserted
that three albino deer were killed on Caper's
Island the previous \vinter. Two were shot by
a negro, while he killed the third. Messrs.
Magwood, Terry, and Noland, of Charleston, one
summer penned beside the water one thousand
old terrapin, to hold them over for the winter
season. These " diamond-backs " would con-
sume five bushels of shrimps in one hour when
fed. A tide of unusual height washed out the

terrapins from their "crawl," and with them dis-


appeared all anticipated results of the experiment.
The next day, Caper's Island and Inlet, De-
wees' Inlet, Long and Breach Inlet
Island, were
successively passed, on strong tidal currents.
Sullivan's Island is separated from Long Island

by Breach Inlet. While following the creeks in


the marshes back of Sullivan's Island, the com-
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 257

pact mass of buildings of Moultrieville, at its


western end, at the entrance of Charleston har-
bor, rose imposingly to view.
The gloomy mantle of darkness was settling
over the harbor as the paper canoe stole quietly
into its historic waters. Before me lay the quiet
bay, with old Fort Sumter rising from the watery
plain like a spectral giant, as though to remind
one that this had been the scene of mighty
struggles. The tranquil waters softly rippled a
response to the touch of oars; all was peace
my
and quiet here, where, only a few short years
before, the thunder of cannon woke a thousand
echoes, and the waves were stained with the life-
blood of America, where war, with her iron
throat, poured out destruction, and God's crea-
tures, men, made after his own image, de-
stroyed each other ruthlessly, having never, in all
that civilizationhad done for them, discovered
any other way of settling their difficulties than
by this wholesale murder.
The actors in this scene were scattered now;
they had returned to the
farm, the workshop,
the desk, and the pulpit. The old flag again
floated upon the ramparts of Sumter, and a gov-
ernment was trying to reconstruct itself, so that
the Great Republic should become more thor-
oughly a government of the people, founded
upon equal rights to all men.
A sharp, scraping sound under my boat roused
17
258 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

me from my revery, for I had leaned upon my


oars while the tide had carried me slowly but

surely upon the oyster-reefs, from which I es-


caped with some slight damage to my paper
shell. Newspaper reading had impressed upon
me a belief that the citizens of the city which

played so important a part in the late civil war


might not treat kindly a Massachusetts man. I

therefore decided to go up to the city upon the


ferry-boat for the large mail which awaited my
arrival at the Charleston post-office, after re-

ceiving which I intended to return to Mount


Pleasant, and cross the bay to the entrance of
the southern watercourses, leaving the city as
quietly as I entered it.
My curiosity was, however, aroused to see
how, under the new reconstruction rule, things
were conducted in the once proud city of
Charleston. As I stood at the window of the
post-office delivery, and inquired through the
narrow window for my letters, a heavy shadow
seemed to fall upon me as the head of a negro
appeared. The black post-office official's feat-
ures underwent a sudden change as I pro-
nounced my name, and, while a warm glow of
affection lightedup his dark face, he thrust his
whole arm through the window, and grasped my
hand with a vigorous shake in the most friendly
manner, as though upon his shoulders rested the

good name of the people.


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 259

AT PHARLEST ON

:c
Welcome to Charleston, Mr. B ,
'welcome
to our beautiful city," he exclaimed. So this
was Charleston under reconstruction.
After handing me my mail, the postmaster
"
graciously remarked, Our rule is to close the
office at five o'clock P. M., but if you are belated

any day, tap at the door, and I will attend you."


260 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

This was my first welcome to Charleston; but


before could return to my quarters at Mount
I

Pleasant, members of the Chamber of Com-


merce, the Carolina Club, and others, pressed
upon me kind attentions and hospitalities, while
Mr. James L. Frazer, of the South Carolina Re-
gatta Association, sent for the Maria Theresa,
and placed it in charge of the wharfinger of the
Southern Wharf, where many ladies and gentle-
men visited it.

When I left the old city, a few days later, I


blushed to think how I had doubted these people,
whose reputation for hospitality to strangers had
been world- wide for more than half a century.
While here I was the guest of Rev. G. R.
Brackett, the well-loved pastor of one of
Charleston's churches. It was with feelings of
regret I my tiny craft towards untried
turned
waters, leaving behind me the beautiful city of
Charleston, and the friends who had so kindly
cared for the lonely canoeist.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 26 I

CHAPTER XII.

FROM CHARLESTON TO SAVANNAH, GEORGIA.

THE INTERIOR WATER ROUTE TO JEHOSSEE ISLAND. GOVERNOR


AIKEN'S MODEL RICE PLANTATION. LOST IN THE HORNS.
ST. HELENA SOUND. LOST IN THE NIGHT. THE PHANTOM
SHIP. A FINLANDER'S WELCOME. A NIGHT ON THE EM-
PEROR'S OLD YACHT. THE PHOSPHATE MINES. COOSAW
AND BROAD RIVERS. PORT ROYAL SOUND AND CALIBOQUE
SOUND. CUFFY'S HOME. ARRIVAL IN GEORGIA. RECEP-
TIONS AT GREENWICH SHOOTING-PARK.

N. L. COSTE, and several other


CAPTAIN
Charleston pilots, drew and presented to
me charts of the route to be followed by the
paper canoe through the Sea Island passages,
from the Ashley to the Savannah River, as some
of the smaller watercourses near the upland were
not, in 1875, upon any engraved chart of the
Coast Survey.
Ex-Governor William Aiken, whose rice plan-
tation on Jehossee Island was considered, before
the late war, the model one of the south, invited
me to pass the following Sunday with him upon
his estate, which was about sixty-five miles from

Charleston, and along one of the interior water


routes to Savannah. He proposed to leave his
city residence and travel by land, while I
paddled
262 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

my canoe southward to meet him. The genial


editor of the "News and Courier" promised to
notify the people of my departure, and have the
citizens assembled to give me a South Carolina
adieu. To avoid .
this publicity, so kindly
meant, I
quietly the city from the south
left

side on Friday, February I2th, and ascended the

Ashley to Wappoo Creek, on the opposite bank


of the river.
A steamboat sent me a screaming salute as the
mouth of the Wappoo was reached, which made
me feel though in strange waters, friends
that,
were all around me. I was now following one
of the salt-water, steamboat passages through
the great marshes of South Carolina. From
" "
Wappoo Creek I took the Elliot Cut into the
broad Stono River, from behind the marshes of
which forests rose upon the low bluffs of the
upland, and rowed steadily on to Church Flats,
where Wide Awake, with its landing and store,
nestled on the bank.
A little further on the tides divided, one ebb-

ing through the Stono to the sea, the other to-


wards the North Edisto. " New Cut " connects
Church Flats with Wadmelaw Sound, a sheet
of water not over two miles in width and the
same distance in length. From the sound the
Wadmelaw River runs to the mouth of the Da-
hoo. Vessels drawing eight and a half feet of
water can pass on full tides from Charleston over
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 263

the course I was following to the North Edisto


River.
Leaving Wadmelaw Sound, a deep bend of
the river was entered, when the bluffs of En-
terprise Landing, with its store and the ruins of
a burnt saw-mill, came into view on the left.
Having rowed more than thirty miles from the
Ashley, and finding that the proprietor of En-
terprise, a Connecticut gentleman, had made
preparations to entertain me, this day of pleasant
journeying ended.
The Cardinal-bird was carolling his matin
song when the members of this little New
England colony watched my departure down the
Wadmelaw the next morning. The course was
for the most part over the submerged phosphate
beds of South Carolina, where the remains of
extinct species were now excavated, furnishing
food for the worn-out soils of America and Eu-
rope, and interesting studies and speculations for
men of science. The Dahoo River was reached
soon after leaving Enterprise. Here the North
Edisto, a broad river, passes the mouth of the
Dahoo, in its descent to the sea, which is about
ten miles distant.
For two miles along the Dahoo the porpoises
gave me strong proof of their knowledge of the
presence of the paper canoe by their rough
gambols, but being now in quiet inland waters,
I could laugh at these strange creatures as they
264 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

broke from the water around the boat. At four


o'clock P. M. the extensive marshes of Jehossee
Island were reached, and I approached the vil-
lage of the plantation through a short canal.
Out of the rice-fields of rich, black alluvium
rose an area of higher land, upon which were
situated the mansion and village of Governor

Aiken, where he, in 1830. commenced his duties


as rice-planter. A hedge of bright green casino
surrounded the well-kept garden, within which
magnolias and live-oaks enveloped the solid old
house, screening it with their heavy foliage from
the strong winds of the ocean, while flowering
shrubs of all descriptions added their bright and
vivid coloring to the picturesque beauty of the
scene.
The governor had arrived at Jehossee before
me, and Saturday being pay-day, the faces of the
negroes were wreathed in smiles. Here, in his
quiet island home, I remained until Monday with
this most excellent man and patriot, whose soul
had been tried as by fire during the disturbances
caused by the war.
As we sat together in that room where, in

years gone by, Governor Aiken had entertained


his northern guests, with Englishmen of noble

blood, a room full of reminiscences both


pleasant and painful, my kind host freely told
me the story of his busy life, which sounded like
a tale of romance. He had tried to stay the wild
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 265

storm of secession when the war-cloud hung


gloomily over his state. It broke, and his un-
heeded warnings were drowned in the thunders
of the political tempest that swept over the fair
south. Before the war he owned one thousand
slaves. He
organized schools to teach his ne-
groes to read and write. The improvement of
their moral condition was his great study.
The he had entered upon, though at first
life

distasteful, had been forced upon him, and he


met his peculiar responsibilities with a true
Christian desire to benefit all within his reach.
When young man, having returned from the
a
tour of Europe, his father presented him with
Jehossee Island, an estate of five thousand acres,
around which it required four stout negro oars-
men to row him in a day. " Here," said the
father to the future governor of South Carolina,
as he presented the domain to his son, "here
are the means; now go to work and develop
them."
William Aiken applied himself industriously
to the task ofimproving the talents given him.
His well-directed efforts bore good fruit, as year
after year Jehossee Island, from a half sub-

merged, sedgy, boggy waste, grew into one of


the finest rice-plantations in the south. The
new lord of the manor ditched the marshes, and
walled in his new rice-fields with dikes, to keep
out the freshets from the upland and the tides
266 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

from the ocean, perfecting a complete system of


drainage and irrigation. He built comfortable
quarters for his slaves, and erected a church and
schoolhouse for their use. From the original
two hundred and eighty acres of cultivated rice

land, the new proprietor developed the wild


morass into sixteen hundred acres of rice-fields,
and six hundred acres of vegetable, corn, and
provender producing land.
For several seasons prior to the war, Jehossee
yielded a rice crop which sold for seventy thou-
sand dollars, and netted annually fifty thousand
dollars income to the owner. At that time Gov-
ernor Aiken had eight hundred and seventy-
three slaves on the island, and about one hundred

working as mechanics, &c., in Charleston. The


eight hundred and seventy-three Jehossee slaves,
men, women, and children, furnished a working
force of three hundred for the rice-fields.
Mr. Aiken would not tolerate the loose matri-
monial ways of negro life, but compelled his
slaves to accept the marriage ceremony; and
herein lay one of his chief difficulties, for, to
whatever cause we attribute it, the fact remains
the same, namely, that the ordinary negro has
no sense of morality. After all the attempts
made on this plantation to improve the moral
nature of these men and women, Governor Aiken,
during a yellow-fever season in Savannah after
the war, while visiting the poor sufferers, intent
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 267

upon charitable works, found in the lowest quar-


ter of the city, sunk in the most abject depths of

vice, men and women who had once been good


servants on his plantations.
In old times Jehossee was a happy place for
master and for slave. The governor rarely
locked the door of his mansion. The family
plate, valued at fifteen thousand dollars, was
stored in a chest in a room on the ground-floor
of the house, which had for its occupants, during
four months of the year, two or three negro ser-
vants. Though the negroes at the quarters,
all

which w ere
r
only a quarter of a mile from the
mansion, knew the valuable contents of the
chest, it was never disturbed. They stole small
things, but seemed incapable of committing a
burglary.
When Union army marched through an-
the
other part of South Carolina, where Governor
Aiken had buried these old family heirlooms and
had added to the original plate thirty thousand
dollars' worth of his own purchasing, the soldiers

dug up this treasure-trove, and forty-five thou-


sand dollars' worth of fine silver went to enrich
the spoils of the Union army. Soon after, three
thousand eight hundred bottles of fine old wines,
worth from eight to nine dollars a bottle, were
dug up and destroyed by a Confederate officer's
order, to prevent the Union army from capturing
them. Thus was plundered an old and revered
268 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

governor of South Carolina one who was a


kind neighbor, a true patriot, and a Christian
gentleman.
The persecutions of the owner of Jehossee
did not, however, terminate with the war; for
when the struggle was virtually ended, and the
fair mansion of the rice-plantation retained its
heirlooms and its furniture, Beaufort, of South
Carolina, was still under the influence of the
Freedman's Bureau; and when it was whispered
that Aiken's house was full of nice old furniture,
and that a few faithful servants of the good old
master were its only guards, covetous thoughts
at once stirred the evil minds of those who were
the representatives of law and order. This house
was left almost without protection. The war was
over. South Carolina had bent her proud head
in agony over her burned plantations and deso-
late homes. The victorious army was now pro-
claiming peace, and generous treatment to a
fallen foe. Then to what an almost unimagin-
able state of demoralization must some of the
freedmen's protectors have fallen, when they
sent a gunboat to Jehossee Island, and rifled the
old house of all its treasures!
To-day, thegovernor's favorite sideboard
stands in the house of a citizen of Boston, as
a relic of the war. O, people of the north,
hold no longer to your relics of the war, stolen
from the firesides of the south! Restore them
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 269

to their owners, or elsebury them out of the


sight of your children, that they may not be led
to believe that the war for the preservation of
the Great Republic was a war for plunder;
else did brave men fight, and good women pray in
" "
vain. Away with stolen pianos, captured
sideboards, and purloined silver! What but
this petty plundering could be expected of men
who robbed by wholesale the poor negro, to
protect whose rights they were sent south?
The great political party of the north became
the pledged conservator of the black man's
rights, and established a Freedman's Bureau,
and Freedman's banks to guard his humble
earnings. All know something of the workings
of those banks; and to everlasting infamy must
be consigned the names of many of those con-
ducting them, men who robbed every one
of these depositories of negro savings, and left
the poor, child-like freedman in a physical state
of destitution, and in a perfect bewilderment of
mind as to who his true friend really was.
A
faithful negro of Jehossee Island was but
one among thousands of such cases. While the
tumult of war vexed the land, the faithful negro
overseer remained at his post to guard his late
master's property, supporting himself by the
manufacture of salt, and living in the most fru-
" "
gal manner to be able to lay by a sum for his
old age. Having saved five hundred dollars, he
270 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

deposited them in the nearest Freedman's bank,


which, though fathered by the United States
government, failed; and the now destitute negro
found himself stripped in the same moment of
his hard-earned savings, and his confidence in
hisnew protectors.
As the war of the was slowly draw-
rebellion

ing to its close, Mr. Lincoln's kind heart was


drawn towards countrymen, and he
his erring
made a list of the names of the wisest and best
men of the south, who, not having taken an act-
ive part in the strife, might be intrusted with
the task of bringing back the unruly states to
their constitutional relations with the national

government. Governor Aiken was informed


that his name was upon that list; and he would

gladly have accepted the onerous position, and


labored in the true interests of the whole people,
but the pistol of an assassin closed the life of
the President, whose generous plans of recon-
struction were never realized.
In the birth of our new Centennial let us
eschew the political charlatan, and bring for-
ward our statesmen to serve and govern a peo-
ple, who, to become a unit of strength, must
ever bear in mind the words of the great south-
"
ern statesman, who said he knew no north, no
south, no east, no west; but one undivided
country."
On Monday, at ten A. M., two negroes assisted
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 271

me to launch my craft from the river'sbank at


the mouth of the canal, for the tide was very
low. As I settled myself for a long pull at the
oars, the face of one of the blacks was seemingly
rent in twain, as a huge mouth opened, and a
pair of strong lungs sent forth these parting
r< "
words 'Bully for Massachusetts !
:

" How did


you know I came from Massachu-
setts?" I called out from the river.
"
I knows de cuts ob dem. I suffered at Fort

Wagner. Dis chile knows Massachusetts."


Two miles further on, Bull Creek served me
"
as a cut-off," and half an hour after entering it
the tide was flooding against me. When Goat
Island Creek was passed on the left hand, knots
of pine forests rose picturesquely in places out
of the bottom-lands, and an hour later, at Ben-
nett's Point,on the right, I found the watercourse
a quarter of a mile in width.
The surroundings were of a lovely nature dur-
ing this day's journey. Here marshes, diversi-
fied by occasional hammocks of timber dotting
their uninteresting wastes; there humble habita-
tions of whites and blacks appearing at intervals
in the forest growth. As I was destitute of a
finished chart of the Coast Survey, after rowing

along one side of Hutchinson's Island I became


bewildered in the maze of creeks which pen-
etrate the marshes that lie between Bennett's
Point and the coast.
272 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

Making a rough topographical sketch of the

country as I descended Hutchinson's Creek, or


Big River, the latter appellation being the
most appropriate, as it is a very wide water-
course, came upon a group of low islands,
I

and found upon one of them a plantation which


had been abandoned to the negroes, and the little
bluff upon which two or three rickety buildings
were situated was the last land which remained
unsubmerged during a high tide between the
plantation and the sea.
I was now in a quandary. I had left the hospi-

table residence of Governor Aiken at ten o'clock


A. M., when I should have departed at sunrise in
order to have had time to enter and pass through
St. Helena Sound before night came on. The
prospect of obtaining shelter was indeed dismal.
Just at this time a loud shout from the negroes
on shore attracted my attention, and I rested
upon my oars, while a boat-load of women and
children paddled out to me.
" "
Is dat de little boat? they asked, viewing
"
my craft with curious eyes. And is dat boat
made of paper?" they continued, showing that
negro runners had posted the people, even in
these solitary regions, of the approach of the
paper canoe. I questioned these negro women
about the route, but each gave a different an-
swer as to the passage through the Horns to St.
Helena Sound. Hurrying on through tortuous
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 273

creeks, the deserted tract called "the Horns" was


entered, and until sunset I followed one short
stream after another, to its source in the reedy
plain, constantly retracing the route, with the
tide not yet ebbing strong enough to show me a
course to the sound. Presently it ebbed more
rapidly, and I followed the tide from one intri-
cacy to another, but never found the principal
thoroughfare.
While I was enveloped in reeds, and at a loss
which way to go, the soft ripple of breaking
waves struck my ear like sweet music. The sea
was telling me of its proximity. Carefully bal-
ancing myself, I stood up in the cranky canoe,
and peering over the grassy thickets, saw before
me the broad waters of Helena Sound. The
fresh saltbreeze from the ocean struck upon
my forehead, and nerved me to a renewal of my
efforts to get within a region of higher land, and
to a place of shelter.
The ebbing tide was yet high, and through
the forest of vegetation, and over the submerged
coast, I pushed the canoe into the sound. NowT I
rowed though for my life, closely skirting the
as

marshes, and soon entered waters covered by a


chart in my
possession. My course was to skirt
the coast of the sound from where I had entered
it, and cross the mouths of the Combahee and
Bull rivers to the entrance of the broad Coosaw.
This last river I would ascend seven miles to the
18
274 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

first upland, and camp thereon until morning.


The tide was now against me, and the night
was growing darker, as the faithful craft was
forced along the marshes four miles to the mouth
of the Combahee River, which I had to ascend
half a mile to get rid of a shoal of frisky por-
poises, who were fishing in the current.
Then descending it on the opposite shore, I

rowed two miles further in the dark, but for half


an hour previous to my reaching the wide de-
bouchure of Bull River, some enormous black-
fish surged about me in the tideway and sounded

their nasal calls, while their more demonstrative


porpoise neighbors leaped from the water in the
misty atmosphere, and so alarmed me and occu-
pied my attention, that instead of crossing to the
Coosaw River, I unwittingly ascended the Bull,
and was soon lost in the contours of the river.
As I hugged the marshy borders of the stream
to escape the strong current of its channel, and
rowed on and on in the gloom, eagerly scanning
the high, sedge-fringed flats to find one little spot
of firm upland upon which I might land my
canoe and obtain a resting-spot for myself for
the night, the feeling that I was lost was not the
most cheerful to be imagined. In the thin fog
which arose from the warm water into the cool
night air, objects on the marshes assumed fantas-
ticalshapes. A
few reeds, taller than the rest,
had the appearance of trees twenty feet high.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 275

So real did these unreal images seem, that I


drove my canoe against the soft, muddy bank,
repeatedly prompted to land in what seemed a
copse of low trees, but in every instance I was
deceived. Still I pulled up that mysterious
river, ignorant at the time of even its name,
praying only for one little spot of upland where
I might camp.
While thus employed, I peered over my
shoulder Jnto the gloom, and beheld what
seemed to be a vision; for, out of a cloud of
mist rose the skeleton lines of a large ship,
with all its sails furled to the yards. "A ship at
"
anchor, and in this out-of-the-way place ! I ejac-
ulated, scarcely believing my eyes; but when I

pointed the canoe towards it, and again looked


over my shoulder, the vision of hope was gone.
Again I saw tall masts cutting through the
mists, but the ship's hull could not be distin-
guished, and as I rowed towards the objects, first
the lower masts disappeared, then the topmasts
dissolved, and later, the topgallant and royal
masts faded away. For half an hour I rowed
and rowed for that mysterious vessel, which was
veiled and unveiled to my sight. Never did so
spectral an object haunt or thwart me. It

seemed to change its position on the water, as


well as in the atmosphere, and I was too busily
employed in trying to reach it to discover in the
darkness that the current, which I could not dis-
276 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

tinguish from smooth water, was whirling me


down stream as fast as I would approach the
weird vessel.
Drawing once more from the current, I fol-
lowed the marsh until the canoe was opposite
the anchorage of a real ship; then, with hearty
pulls, I shot around its stern, and shouted: "Ship
ahoy!"
No one answered the hail. The vessel looked
like a man-of-war, but not of American build.
Not a light gleamed from her ports, not a foot-
fall came from her decks. She seemed to be
deserted in the middle of the river, surrounded
by a desolate waste of marshes. The current
gurgled and sucked about her run, as the ebb-
tide washed her black hull on its way to the sea.
The spectacle seemed now even more myste-
rious than when, mirage-like, it peered forth
from a cloud of mist. But it was real, and not
fantastic. Another hail, louder than the first,
went forth into the night air, and penetrated to
the ship's forecastle, for a sailor answered my
call, and reported to the captain in the cabin the

presence of a boat at the ship's side.


A quick, firm tread sounded upon the deck;
then, with a light bound, a powerfully-built
young man landed upon the high rail of the ves-
sel. He
peered down from his stately ship upon
the speck which floated upon the gurgling
little

current; then, with a voice "filled with the fogs


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 277

of the ocean," he thundered forth, as though he


were hailing a man-of-war: "What boat 's that?"
"Paper canoe Maria Theresa," I replied, in as
foggy a voice as I could assume.
"Where from, and where bound?" again
roared the captain.
"
From Quebec, Canada, and bound to sleep
on board your vessel, if I can ever get up there,"
I politely responded, in a more subdued voice,

for I soon discovered that nature had never in-


tended me for a fog- trumpet.
"
"Ah, is it
you? cheerily responded the cap-
tain,suddenly dispensing with all his fogginess;
"I've been looking for you this long time. Got a
Charleston paper on board; your trip all in it.
Come up, and break a bottle of wine with me."
"All hands" came from the forecastle, and
Finland mates and Finland sailors, speaking both
English and Russian, crowded to the rail to
receive the paper canoe, which had first been
described to them by English newspapers when
the vessel lay in a British port, awaiting the
charter-party which afterwards sent them to Bull
River, South Carolina, for a load of phosphates.
The jolly crew lowered buntlines and clew-
lines, towhich I attached my boat's stores.
These were hoisted up the high sides of the
ship, and, after bending on a line to the bow and
stern rings of the canoe, I ascended by the lad-
der, while Captain Johs. Bergelund and his
278 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

mates claimed the pleasure of landing the paper


canoe on the deck of the Rurik. The tiny shell
looked very small as she rested on the broad,
white decks of the emperor of Russia's old steam
yacht, which bore the name of the founder of
the Russian empire. Though now a bark and
not a steamer, though a freighter and not a
royal yacht, the Rurik looked every inch a
government vessel, for her young captain, with a
sailor's pride, kept her in a thorough state of
cleanliness and order. We
went to supper.
The captain, his mates, and the stranger gath-
ered around the board, while the generous sailor
brought out his curious bottles and put them by
the side of the stillmore curious dishes of food.
All my surroundings were those of the coun-
try of the midnight sun, and I should have felt
more bewildered than when in the fog I viewed
and chased this spectral-looking ship, had not
Captain Bergelund, in most excellent English,
entertained me with a flow of conversation which
put me at my ease. He discoursed of Finland,
w here lakes covered the country from near
r

Abo, chief city, to the far north, where the


its
"
summer days are nearly all night long."
Painting in high colors the delights of his na-
tive land, he begged me to visit Finally, as
it.

midnight drew near, this genial sailor insisted

upon putting me in his own comfortable state-


room, while he slept upon a lounge in the cabin.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 279
<

One mile above the Rurik's anchorage was the


phosphate-mill of the Pacific Company, which
was supplying Captain Bergelund, by lighters,
with his freight of unground fertilizer.
The next morning I took leave of the Rurik,
but, instead of descending the Bull River to the
Coosaw, I determined to save time by crossing
the peninsula between the two rivers by means
of two short creeks which were connected at
"
their sources by a very short canal near the
mines " of the Phosphate Company. When I
entered Horse Island Creek, at eleven o'clock,
the tide was on the last of the ebb, and I sat in
the canoe a long time awaiting the flood to float
me up the wide ditch, which would conduct me
to the creek that emptied into the Coosaw.

Upon the banks of the canal three hours were


lost waiting for the tide to give me one foot of

water, when I rowed into the second water-


course, and late in the afternoon entered the wide
Coosaw. The two creeks and the connecting
canal are called the Haulover Creek.
As I turned up the Coosaw, and skirted the
now submerged marshes of its left bank, two
dredging-machines were at work up the river
raising the remains of the marine monsters of
antiquity. The strong wind and swashing seas
being in my favor, the canoe soon arrived oppo-
site the spot of upland I had so longed to reach

the previous night.


280 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

This was Chisolm's Landing, back of which


were the phosphate works of the Coosaw
Mine Company. The inspector of phosphates,
Mr. John Hunn, offered me the hospitality of
Alligator Hall, where he and some of the gen-
tlemen employed by the company resided in
bachelor retirement. My host described a mam-
mal's tooth that weighed nearly fourteen pounds,
which had been taken from a phosphate mine;
it had been sent to a public room at Beaufort,
South Carolina. A fossil shark's tooth, weighing
four and a half pounds, was also found, and a
learned ichthyologist has asserted that the owner
of remarkable relic of the past must have
this
been one hundred feet in length.
Beaufort was near at hand, and could be easily
reached by entering Brickyard Creek, the en-
trance of which was on the right bank of the
Coosaw, nearly opposite Chisolm's Landing. It
was nearly six miles by this creek to Beaufort,
and from that town to Port Royal Sound, by fol-
lowing Beaufort River, was a distance of eleven
miles. The mouth of Beaufort River is only two
miles from the sea. Preferring to follow a more
interior water route than the Beaufort one, the ca-
noe was rowed up the Coosaw five miles to Whale
Branch, which is crossed by the Port Royal rail-
road bridge. Whale Branch, five miles in length,
empties into Broad River, which I descended
thirteen miles, to the lower end of Daw Island,
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 28 I

on right bank.
its Here, in this region of marshy
shores, the Chechessee River and the Broad River
mingle their strong currents in Port Royal Sound.
It was dusk when the sound was entered from

the extreme end of Daw Island, where it became

necessary to cross immediately to Skull Creek, at


Hilton Head Island, or go into camp for the night.
I looked down the sound six miles to the broad
Atlantic, which was sending in clouds of mist on
a fresh breeze. gazed across the mouth of the
I

Chechessee, and the sound at the entrance of the


port of refuge. I desired to traverse nearly three

miles of this rough water. I would gladly have


camped, but the shore I was about to leave offered
to submerge me with the next high water. No
friendly hammock of trees could be seen as I
glided from the shadow of the high rushes of
Daw Island. Circumstances decided the point
in rowed rapidly into the sound.
debate, and I

The canoe had not gone half a mile when the


Chechessee River opened fully to view, and a
pretty little hammock, with two or three shanties
beneath its trees, could be plainly seen on Daw's
Island.
It was now too and ascend the
late to return
river to the hammock, sound was dis-
for the
turbed by the freshening breeze from the sea
blowing against the ebb-tide, which was increased
in power by the outflowing volume of water from
the wide Chechessee. It required all the energy
282 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

I possessed to keep the canoe from being over-

run by the swashy, sharp-pointed seas. Once or


twice I thought my last struggle for life had
come, but a merciful Power gave me the strength
and coolness that this trying ordeal required, and
I somehow weathered the dangerous oyster reefs

above Skull Creek, and landed at " Seabrook


Plantation," upon Hilton Head Island, near two
or three old houses, one of which was being fitted
up as a store by Mr. Kleim, of the First New
York Volunteers, who had
lived on the island
since 1861. Mr. Kleim took me to his bachelor
quarters, where the wet cargo of the Maria The-
resa was dried by the kitchen fireplace.
The next day, February 18, I left Seabrook
and followed Skull Creek to Mackay's Creek,
and, passing the mouth of May River, entered
Calibogue Sound, where a sudden tempest arose
and drove me into a creek which flowed out of
the marshes of Bull Island. A few negro huts
were discovered on a low mound of earth. The
blacks told me their hammock was called Bird
Island.
The tempest lasted all day, and as no shelter
could be found on the creek, a darky hauled my
canoe on a cart a couple of miles to Bull Creek,
which enters into Cooper River, one of the water-
courses I was to enter from Calibogue Sound.
Upon reaching the wooded shores of Bull Creek,
my carter introduced me to the head man of the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 283

settlement, a weazened-looking little old crea-


ture called Cuffy, who, though respectful in his
demeanor to " de Yankee-mans," was cross and
overbearing to the few families occupying the
shanties in the magnificent grove of live-oaks
which shaded them.
Cuffy's cook-house, or kitchen, which was a
log structure measuring nine by ten feet, with
posts only three feet high, was the only building
which could be emptied of its contents for my
accommodation. Our contract or lease was a
verbal one, Cuffy's terms being " whateber de
white man likes to gib an ole nigger." Cuffy
cut a big switch, and sent in his " darter," a girl
of about fourteen years, to clean out the shanty.
When she did not move fast enough to suit the
old man's wishes, he switched her over the
shoulders till it excited my pity; but the girl
seemed to take the beating as an every-day
amusement, for it made no impression on her
hard skull and thick skin.
After commencing to "keep house," the old
women came to sell me
eggs and beg for
"bacca." They requested me never to throw
"
away my coffee-grounds, as it made coffee good
'nuf for black folks." I distributed some of my

stores and, after cutting rushes and


among them,
boughs my bed, turned in for the night.
for
These negroes had been raising Sea-Island
cotton, but the price having declined to five
284 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

cents a pound, they could not get twenty-five


cents a day for their labor by cultivating it.
The fierce wind subsided before dawn, but a
heavy fog covered the marshes and the creek.
" "
Cuffy's settlement turned out before sunrise
to see me off; and the canoe soon reached the
broad Cooper River, which I ascended in the
misty darkness by following close to the left
bank. Four miles up the Cooper River from
Calibogue Sound there is a passage through the
marshes from the Cooper to New River, which
is Ram's Horn Creek. On the right of
called
its entrance a well-wooded hammock rises from

the marsh, and is called Page Island. About


midway between the two rivers and along this
crooked thoroughfare is another piece of upland
called Pine Island, inhabited by the families of
two boat-builders.
While navigating Cooper River, as the heavy
mists rolled in clouds over the quiet waters, a
sail-boat, rowed by negroes, emerged from the
gloom and as suddenly disappeared. I shouted
after them: "Please tell me the name of the next
creek." A hoarse voice
came back to me from
the cloud: "Pull and be d d." Then all was
still as night again. To solve this seemingly
uncourteous reply, so unusual in the south,
I consulted the manuscript charts which the
Charleston pilots had kindly drawn for my use,
and found that the negroes had spoken geo-
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 285

graphically as well as truthfully, for Pine Island


Creek is known to the watermen as " Pull and
be d d Creek," on account of its tortuous char-
acter, and chiefly because, as the tides head in
it, if a boat enters it from one river with a favor-

able tide, it has a strong head current on the


other side of the middle ground to oppose it.
Thus pulling at the oars at some parts of the
creek becomes hard work the boatmen;
for
hence this name, which, though profane, may
be considered geographical.
After leaving the Cooper River, the water-
courses to Savannah were discolored by red or
yellow mud. From Pine Island I descended
New River two miles and a half to Wall's Cut,
which is only a quarter of a mite in length, and
through which I entered Wright's River, fol-
lowing it a couple of miles to the broad, yel-
low, turbulent current of the Savannah.
My thoughts now naturally turned to the early
days of steamboat enterprise, when this river, as
well as the Hudson, was conspicuous; for though
the steamer Savannah was not the first steam-
propelled vessel which cut the waves of the
Atlantic, she was the first steamer that ever
crossed it. Let us examine historical data.
Colonel John Stevens, of New York, built the
steamboat Phoenix about the year 1808, and was
prevented from using it upon the Hudson River
by the Fulton and Livingston monopoly charter.
286 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

The Phoenix made an ocean voyage to the


Delaware River. The first English venture was
that of the steamer Caledonia, which made a

passage to Holland in 1817. The London Times


of May n, 1819, printed in its issue of that date
the following item:

"GREAT EXPERIMENT. A new vessel of three hundred tons


New York for the
has been built at express purpose of carrying
passengers across the Atlantic. She is to come to Liverpool
direct."

This ship-rigged steamer was the " Savannah,"


and the bold projector of this experiment of send-
ing a steamboat across the Atlantic was Daniel
Dodd. The Savannah was built in New York, by
Francis Ficket, for Mr. Dodd. Stephen Vail, of
Morristown, New Jersey, built her engines, and
on the 2zd of August, 1818, she was launched,
gliding gracefully into the element which was to
bear her to foreign lands, there to be crowned
with the laurels of success. On May 25th this
purely American-built vessel left Savannah, and
glided out from this waste of marshes, under
the command of Captain Moses Rogers, with
Stephen Rogers as navigator. The port of New
London, Conn., had furnished these able seamen.
The steamer reached Liverpool June 2oth, the
passage having occupied twenty-six days, upon
eighteen of which she had used her paddles. A
son of Mr. Dodd once told me of the sensation
produced by the arrival of a smoking vessel on
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 287

the coast of Ireland, and how Lieutenant John


Bowie, of the king's cutter Kite, sent a boat-load
of sailors to board the Savannah to assist her
crew to extinguish the fires of what his Majesty's
officers supposed to be a burning ship.
The Savannah, after visiting Liverpool, con-
tinued her voyage on July 23d, and reached St.
Petersburg in safety. Leaving the latter port on
October loth, this adventurous craft completed
the round voyage upon her arrival at Savannah,
November 3oth.
pulled up the Savannah until within five miles
I

of the city, and then left the river on its south


side,where old rice-plantations are first met, and
entered St. Augustine Creek, which is the steam-
boat thoroughfare of the inland route to Florida.
Just outside the city of Savannah, near its beau-
tiful cemetery, where tall trees with their grace-
ful drapery of Spanish moss screen from wind
and sun the quiet resting-places of the dead, my
canoe was landed, and stored in a building of the
German Greenwich Shooting Park, where Mr.
John Hellwig, in a most hospitable manner, cared
for it and its owner.
While awaiting the arrival of letters at the
Savannah post-office, many of the ladies of that
beautiful city came out to see the paper canoe.
They seemed to have the mistaken idea that my
little craft had come from the distant Dominion

of Canada over the Atlantic Ocean. They also


288 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

looked upon the voyage of the paper canoe as a


very sentimental thing, while the canoeist had
found it an intensely practical affair, though oc-
casionally relieved by incidents of romantic or
amusing character. As the ladies clustered
round the boat while it rested upon the centre-
table of Mr. Hellwig's parlor, they questioned me
freely.
"
:?
what were your thoughts
Tell us," they said,
while you rowed upon the broad ocean in the
"
lonely hours of night?
Though unwilling tobreak their pleasing illu-
sions, I was obliged toinform them that a sen-
sible canoeist is usually enjoying his needed rest
in some camp, or sleeping in some sheltered
place, under a roof
possible, if it is too after
dark to travel in safety; and as to ocean travel-
ling, the canoe had only once entered upon the
Atlantic Ocean, and then through a mistake.
"
But what subjects occupy your thoughts as
you row, and row, and row all day by yourself,
"
in this little ship? a motherly lady inquired.
w
To tell you honestly, ladies, I must say that
when I am in shallow watercourses, with the
tides usually ebbing at the wrong time for my

convenience, I am so full of anxiety about getting


wrecked on the reefs of sharp coon-oysters,
that I am wishing myself in deep water; and
when my route forces me into the deep water of
sounds, and the surface becomes tossed into wild
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 289

disorder by strong currents and stronger winds,


and the porpoises pay me their little attentions,
chasing the canoe, flapping their tails, and show-
ing their sportive dispositions, I think longingly
of those same shoal creeks, and wish I was once
more in their shallow waters."
r?
We ladies have prayed
your safety," said
for
"
a kind-looking German lady, and we will pray
that your voyage may have a happy and success-
ful end."
When the ladies left, two Irish laborers, dressed
in sombre black, with high hats worn with the
air of dignity, examined the boat. There was an
absence of the sparkle of fun usually seen in
the Irish face, for this was a serious occasion.
They did not see any romance or sentiment in
the voyage, but took a broad, geographical view
of the matter. They stood silently gazing at
the canoe with the same air of solemnity they
would have given a corpse. Then one addressed
the other, as though the owner of the craft was
entirely out of the hearing of their conversation.
Said No. i, " And what did I tell ye, Pater?"
" And so "
ye did," replied No. 2. And didn't I
say so?" continued No. i. "Of course ye did;
and wasn't me of the same mind, to be sure?"
responded No. Yes, I told ye as how it is
;t
2.

the men of these times is greater than the men of


ould times. There was the great Coolumbus, who
came over in three ships to see Americky. What
19
290 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

did he know about paper boats? Nothing at all,


at all. He cum over in
big ships, while this young
feller has cum all the way from Canada. I tell
ye
the men of ould times was not up to the men of
these times. Thin there's Captain Boyton, who
don't use any boat or ship at all, at all, but goes a-

swimming in rubber clothes to keep him dry all


over the Atlantic Oshin. Jis' look, man, how he
landed on the shores of ould Ireland not long since.
Now what's Coolumbus, or any other man of the
past ages, to him? Coolumbus could not hold a
candle to Boyton No, I tell ye agen that the men
!

of this age isgreater* than the men of the past


" "
ages." And," broke in No. 2, there's a Brit-
isher who's gone to the River Niles in a ca-
noe." "The River Niles!" hotly exclaimed
"
No. ij don't waste your breath on that thing.
It's no neiv thing at all, at all. It was diskivered

a long time ago, and nobody cares a fig for it


now." * Yet," responded No. 2, " some of those
old-times people were very enterprising. There
was that great traveller Robinson Crusoe ye must
:

confess he was a great man for his time." The r

same who wint to the South Sea Islands and


settled there?" asked the first
biographer. The r

very same man" replied No. 2, with animation.


This instructive conversation was here inter-
rupted by a party of ladies and gentlemen, who
in turn gave their views of canoe and canoeist.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 29!

CHAPTER XIII.

FROM THE SAVANNAH RIVER TO FLORIDA.


ROUTE TO THE SEA ISLANDS OF GEORGIA. STORM-BOUND ON
GREEN ISLAND. OSSA15AW ISLAND. ST. CATHERINE'S SOUND.
SAPELO ISLAND. THE MUD OF MUD RIVER. NIGHT IN A
NEGRO CABIN. " DE SHOUTINGS " ON DOBOY ISLAND.
BROUGHTON ISLAND. ST. SIMON'S AND JEKYL ISLANDS.
INTERVIEW WITH AN ALLIGATOR. A NIGHT IN JOINTER
HAMMOCK. CUMBERLAND ISLAND AND ST. MARY'S RIVER.
FAREWELL TO THE SEA.

February 24th, the voyage was again re-


ON sumed. My route lay through the coast
islands of Georgia, as far south as the state

boundary, Cumberland Sound, and the St. Ma-


ry's River. This part of the coast is very inter-
and is beautifully delineated on the Coast
esting,
Charts No. 56-57 of the United States Coast
Survey, which were published the year after my
voyage ended.
Steamers run from Savannah through these
interesting interior water-ways to the ports of
the St. John's River, Florida, and by taking this
route the traveller can escape a most uninterest-
ing railroad journey from Savannah to Jackson-
ville, where sandy soils and pine forests present
292 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

an uninviting prospect to the eye. A


little

dredging, in a few places along the steamboat


route, should be done at national cost, to make
this a more convenient and expeditious tidal
route for vessels.
Leaving Greenwich, Bonaventure, and Thun-
me on the upland, the canoe en-
derbolt behind
tered the great marshy district of the coast along
the Wilmington and Skiddaway rivers to Skid-

daway Narrows, which is a contracted, crooked


watercourse connecting the Skiddaway with the
Burnside River. The low lands were made pic-
turesque by hammocks, some of which were cul-
tivated.
In leaving the Burnside for the broad Vernon

River, as the canoe approached the sea, one of


the sudden tempests which frequently vex these
coast-waters arose, and drove me to a hammock
in the marshes of Green Island, on the left bank
and opposite the mouth of the Little Ogeechee
River. Green Island "has been well cultivated
in the past,but is now only the summer home
of Mr. Styles, its owner. Two or three families
of negroes inhabited the cabins and looked after
the property of the absent proprietor.
I waded to
my knees in the mud before the
canoe could be landed, and, as it stormed all
night, I slept on the floor of the humble cot of
the negro Echard Holmes, having first treated
the household to crackers and coffee. The ne-
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 293

groes gathered from other points to examine the


canoe, and, hearing that I was from the north,
one grizzly old darky begged me to " carry "
his complaints to Washington.
" "
De goberment," he said, has been berry
good to wees black folks. It gib us our free-
dom, all berry well; but dar is an noder ting

wees wants; dat is, wees wants General Grant to


make tings stashionary. De storekeeper gibs a
poor nigger only one dollar fur bushel corn, some-
times not so much. Den he makes poor nigger
gib him tree dollars fur bag hominy, sometimes
more 'n dat. Wees wants de goberment to make
tings stashionary. Make de storekeeper gib
black man one dollar and quarter fur de bushel
of corn, and make him sell de poor nigger de
bag hominy fur much less dan tree dollars.
Make all tings stashionary. Den dar's one ting
more. Tell de goberment to do fur poor darky
'nodder ting, make de ole massa say to me,
?
You's been good slave in ole times, berry
good slave; now I gib you one, two, tree,y?x>
acres of land for yoursef.'Den ole nigger be
happy, and massa be happy too; den bof of urn
bees happy. Hab you a leetle bacca fur dis ole
man?"
From mansion it was but three
the Styles
miles Ossabaw Sound. Little Don Island
to
and Raccoon Key are in the mouth of the Ver-
non. Between the two flat islands is a deep
294 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE..

passage through which the tides rush with great


force; it is called Hell Gate. On the south
side of Raccoon Key the Great Ogeechee River
pours its strong volume of water into Ossabaw
Sound.
I entered the Great Ogeechee through the
Don Island passage, and saw sturgeon-fishermen
at work with their nets along the shores of Os-

sabaw, one of the sea islands. Ossabaw Island


lies between Ossabaw and St. Catherine's
sounds, and is eight miles long and six miles
wide. The side towards the sea is firm upland,
diversified with glades, while the western por-
tion is principally marshes cut up by numerous
creeks. All the sea islands produce the long
staple cotton known
as sea-island cotton, and
before the war
a very valuable variety. few A
negroes occupy the places abandoned by the
proprietor, and eke out a scanty livelihood.
There are many deer in the forests of Ossa-
baw Island. One of its late proprietors in-
formed me that there must be at least ten thou-
sand wild hogs there, as they have been multi-
plying for many years, and but few were shot
by the negroes. The domestic hog becomes a
very shy animal if left to himself for two or
three years. The hunter may search for him
without a dog almost in vain, though the woods
may contain large numbers of these creatures.
The weather was now delightful, and had I
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 295

possessed a light tent I would not have sought


shelter at night in a human habitation anywhere

along the route. The malaria which arises from


fresh-water sinks in many of the sea islands

during the summer months, did not now make


camping-out dangerous to the health.
Crossing
the GreatOgeechee above Middle Marsh Island,
I followed the river to the creek called Florida
I reached Bear River,
Passage, through which
with wide and long reaches, and descended it
its

to St. Catherine's Sound.


Now the sea opened to full view as the canoe
crossed the tidal ocean gateway two miles to
North Newport River. When four miles up the
Newport I entered Johnson's Creek, which flows
from North to South Newport rivers. By
means of the creek and the South Newport
River, my little craft was navigated down to the
southern end of St. Catherine's Island to the
sound of the same name, and here another inlet
was crossed at sunset, and High Point of Sapelo
Island was reached.
From among the green trees of the high bluff"
a mansion, which exhibited the taste of its
builder, rose imposingly. This was, however,
but one of the many edifices that are tombs of
buried hopes. The proprietor, a
northern gen-
tleman, after the war purchased one-third of
Sapelo Island for fifty-five thousand dollars in

gold. He attempted, as many other enterprising


296 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

northerners had done, to give the late slave a


chance to prove his worth as a freedman to the
world.
"Pay the negro wages; treat him as you
would treat a white man, and he will reward
your confidence with industry and gratitude."
So thought and so acted the large-hearted north-
ern colonel. He built a large mansion, engaged
his freedmen, paid them for their work, and
treated them like men. The result was ruin,
and simply because he had not paused to con-
sider that the negro had not been born a freed-

man, and that the demoralization of slavery was


still upon him. Beside which facts we must
also place certain ethnological and moral prin-

ciples which exist in the pure negro type, and


which are entirely overlooked by those philan-
thropic persons who have rarely, if ever, seen a
full-blooded negro, but affect to understand him

through his ha If-white brother, the mulatto.


Mud River opened its wide mouth before me
as the inlet, but the tide was very low, and
I left

Mud River is a sticking-point in the passage of


the Florida steamers. It became so dark that I

was obliged to get near the shore to make a


landing. My attempt was made opposite a ne-
gro's house which was on a bluff, but the water
had receded into the very narrow channel of
Mud River, and I was soon stuck fast on a flat.
Getting overboard, I sank to my knees in the
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 297

soft mud. I called for help, and was answered

by a tall darky, who, with a double-barrelled gun,


left his house and stood in a threatening manner
on the shore. I appealed for help, and said I
wished to go ashore. " Den cum de best way
you can," he answered in a surly manner. "What
duz you want 'bout here, any way? What duz
you want on Choc'late Plantation, anyhow?"
Iexplained to this ugly black that I was a
northern man, travelling to see the country, and
wished to camp near his house for protection,
and promised, if he would aid me to land, that I
would convince him of my honest purpose by
showing him the contents of my canoe, and
would prove to him that I was no enemy to the
colored man. I told him of the maps, the let-
ters, and the blankets which were in the little
canoe now so fast in the mud, and what a loss it
would be if some marauder, passing on the next
high tide, should steal my boat.
The fellow slowly lowered his gun, which had
been held in a threatening position, and said:
"
Nobody knows his friends in dese times. Pse
had a boat stealed by some white man, and spose
you was cumin to steal sumting else. Dese folks
on de riber can't be trussed. Dey steals ebry-
ting. Heaps o' bad white men 'bout nowadays
sens de war. Steals a nigger's chickens, boats,
and ebryting dey lays hands on. Up at de big
house on High Pint (norfen gemmin built him,
298 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

and den got gusted wid cotton-planting and went


home) de white folks goes and steals all de
cheers and beds, and ebryting out ob de house.
Sens de war all rascals."
It was a wearisome arM dangerous job for me

to navigate the canoe over the soft, slippery mud


to the firm shore, as there were unfathomed

places in the flats which might ingulf or entomb


me at an) 7 step; but the task was completed, and
I stood face to face with the now half tranquillized
negro. Before removing the mud that hung upon
me to the waist in heavy clods, I showed the

darky my chart-case, and explained the object


of my mission. He was very intelligent, and,
after asking a few questions, said to his son:
"
Take dis gun to de house; " and then turning
"
to me, continued: Dis is de sort ob man I'se am.
Fse knows how to treat a friend like a white man,
and I'se can fight wid my knife or my fist or my
gun anybody who 'poses on me. Now I'se knows
you is a gemmin Fse won't treat you like a nig-
ger. Gib you best I'se got. Cum to de house."
When inside of the house of this resolute
black, every attention was paid to my comfort.
The cargo of the paper canoe was piled up in
one corner of the room. The wife and children
sat before the bright fire and listened to the story
ofmy cruise. I doctored the sick
pickaninny of
my host, and made the family a pot of strong cof-
fee. This negro could read, but he asked me to
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 299

address a label he wished to attach to a bag of


Sea-Island cotton of one hundred and sixty
pounds' weight, which he had raised, and was
to ship by the steamboat Lizzie Baker to a mer-
cantile house in Savannah.
As rested upon my blankets, which were
I

spread upon the floor of the only comfortable


room in the house, at intervals during the night
the large form of the black stole softly in and bent
over me to see if I were well covered up, and he
as noiselessly piled live-oak sticks upon the dying
embers to dry up the dampness which rose from
the river.
He brought me a basin of cold water in the
morning, and not possessing a towel clean enough
for a white man, he insisted that I should use his

newly starched calico apron to wipe my


wife's
faceand hands upon. When I offered him
money for the night's accommodation and the
excellent oyster breakfast that his wife prepared
for me, he said: "You may gib my wife what-
eber pleases you for her cooking, but nuffin for
de food or de lodgings. I'se no nigger, ef I is
a cullud man."
It was now Saturday, and as I rowed through
the marsh thoroughfare called New Tea Kettle
Creek, which connects Mud River with Doboy
Sound near the southern end of Sapelo Island, I
calculated the chances of finding a resting-place
for Sunday. If I went up to the mainland
300 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

through North and Darien rivers to the town of


Darien, my past experience taught me that in-
stead of enjoying rest I would become a forced
exhibiter of the paper canoe to crowds of people.
To avoid this, I determined to pass the day in
the first hammock that would afford shelter and
fire-wood ;
but as the canoe entered Doboy
Sound, which, with its inlet, separates Sapelo
from the almost treeless Wolf Island, the wind
rose with such violence that I was driven to take
refuge upon Doboy Island, a small marshy terri-
tory, the few firm acres of which were occupied
by the settlement and steam saw-mill of Messrs.
Hiltons, Foster & Gibson, a northern lumber firm.
Foreign and American vessels were anchored
under the lee of protecting marshes, awaiting
their cargoes of sawed deals and hewn timber;
while rafts of logs, which had been borne upon
the currents of the Altamaha and other streams
from the far interior regions of pine forests, were
collected here and manufactured into lumber.
One of the proprietors, a northern gentleman,
occupied with his family a very comfortable cot-

tage near the store and steam saw-mill. As the


Doboy people had learned of the approach of the
paper canoe from southern newspapers, the little
craft was identified as soon as it touched the low
shores of the island.
I could not find any kind of hotel or lodging-
place in this settlement of Yankees, Canadians,
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 30!

and negroes, and was about to leave it in search


of some lone hammock, when a mechanic kindly
offered me the floor of an unfinished room in an
unfinished house, in which I passed my Sunday
trying to rest, and obtaining my meals at a res-
taurant kept by a negro.
A member of the Spaulding family, the own-
ers of a part ofSapelo Island, called upon me,
and seeing me in such inhospitable quarters,
with fleas in hundreds invading my blankets,
urged me to return with him to his island .do-
main, where he might have an opportunity to
make me comfortable. The kind gentleman
little knew how hardened I had become to such

annoyances as hard floors and the active flea.


Such inconveniences had been robbed of their
discomforts by the kind voices of welcome
which, with few exceptions, came from every
southern gentleman whose territory had been
invaded by the paper canoe.
There was but one place of worship on the
island, and that was under the charge of the ne-
groes. Accepting the invitation of a nephew of
the resident New
England proprietor of Doboy
w
Island to attend de shoutings," we set out on
Sunday evening for the temporary place of negro
worship. A negro girl, decked with ribbons,
called across the street to a young colored delin-

quent:
!<!

You no goes to de shoutings, Sam!


Why fur? You neber hears me shout, honey,
302 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

and dey do say I shouts so pretty. Cum 'long


wid me now."
A few blacks had collected in the small shanty,
and the preacher, an old freedman, was about to
read a hymn as we entered. At first the singing
was low and monotonous, but it
gradually swelled
to a high pitch as thenegroes became excited.
Praying followed the singing. Then the black
"
preacher set aside de shouting " part of the
service for what he considered more important
interests, and discoursed upon things spiritual
and temporal in this wise:
"
Now Fse got someting to tell all of yese
berry 'portant." Here two young blacks got up
to leave the room, but were rudely stopped by a
"
negro putting his back against the door. No,
no," chuckled the preacher, "yese don't git off
dat a-way. I'se prepared fur de ockasun. No-
body gits out ob dis room till I'se had my say.
Jes you set down dar. Now I'se goin' to do one
ting, and it's dis: I'se goin' to spread de Gospel
all ober dis yere island of Doboy. Now's de
time; talked long 'nuf, too long, 'bout buildin'
de church. Whar's yere pride? whar is it? Got
none! Look at dis room for a church! Look
at dis pulpit one flour-barrel wid one candle
stickin' out ob a bottle! Dat's yere pulpit. Got
no pride! Shamed o' yeresefs! Here white
men comes way from New York to hear de
Gospel in dis yere room wid flour-barrel fur
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 303

pulpit, and empty bottle fur candlestick. No


more talk now. All go to work. De mill peo-
ple will gib us lumber fur de new church;
odders mus' gib money. Tell ebbry cullud pus-
son on de island to cum on Tuesday and carry
lumber, and gib ebbry one what he can, one
dollar apiece, or ten cents if got no more. De
white gemmins we knows whar to find when we
wants dar money, but de cullud ones is berry
slippery when de hat am passed round."
At the termination of the preacher's exhorta-
tion, I proposed to my companion that I should

present the minister with a dollar for his new


church, but. with a look of dismay, he replied:
"
Oh, don't give it to the preacher. Hand it to
that other negro sitting near him. We never
trust the preacher with money; healways
spends the church-money. We only trust him
forpreaching"
Monday, March ist, opened fair, but the wind
arosewhen the canoe reached Three Mile Cut,
which connects the Darien with Altamaha River.
I went through this narrow steamboat passage,

and being prevented by the wind from entering


the wide Altamaha, returned to the Darien
River and ascended it to General's Cut, which,
with Butler River, affords a passage to the Alta-
maha River. Before entering General's Cut,
mistaking a large, half submerged alligator for a
log on a mud bank, the canoe nearly touched the
304 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

saurian before he was roused from his nap to


retire into the water. General's Cut penetrates
a rice plantation opposite the town of Darien,
to Butler's Island, the estate of the late Pierce

Butler, at its southern end. Rice-planting, since


the war, had not proved a very profitable busi-
ness to the present proprietors, who deserve
much praise for the efforts they have made to
educate their freedmen. Aprofitable crop of
oranges is gathered some seasons from the
groves upon Butler's Island.
From the mouth of General's Cut down But-
lerRiver to the Altamaha was but a short row.
The latter stream would have taken me to Alta-
maha Sound, to avoid which I passed through
Wood's Cut into the South Altamaha River, and
proceeded through the lowland rice-plantations
towards St. Simon's Island, w hich is by the sea.
r

About the middle of the afternoon, when close


to Broughton Island, where the South Altamaha

presented a wide area to the strong head-wind


which was sending little waves over my canoe,
a white plantation-house, under the veranda of
which an elderly gentleman was sitting, attracted
my attention. Here was what seemed to be the
last camping-ground on a route of several miles
to St. Simon's Island.
If the wind continued to blow from the same
quarter, the canoe could not cross Buttermilk
Sound that night; so I went ashore to inquire if
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 305

there were any hammocks in the marshes by the


river-banks between the plantation and the sound.
The bachelor proprietor of Broughton Island,
Captain Richard A. Akin, posted me as to the
route to St. Simon's Island, but insisted that the
canoe traveller should share his comfortable
quarters until the next day; and when the next
day came round, and the warm sun and smooth
current of the wide Altamaha invited me to
continue the voyage, the hospitable rice-planter
thought the weather not settled enough for me
to venture down to the In fact, he held
sound.
me a rather willing captive for several days, and
then let me off on the condition that I should
return at some future time, and spend a month
with him in examining the sea islands and game
resources of the vicinity.
Captain Akin was a successful rice-planter on
the new system of employing freedmen on wa-
ges, but while he protected the ignorant blacks
in all their newly-found rights, he was a thor-

ough disciplinarian. The negroes seemed to


like their employer, and stuck to him with
greater tenacity than they did to those planters
who allowed them to do as they pleased. The
result of lax treatment with these people is al-

ways a failure of crops. The rivers and swamps


near Broughton Island abound in fine fishes and
terrapin, while the marshes and flats of the sea
islands afford excellent opportunities for the
20
306 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

sportsman to try his skill upon the feathered


tribe.
On Monday, March 9th, the Maria Theresa
left Broughton Island well provisioned with the
stores the generous captain had pressed upon
my acceptance. The atmosphere was softened
by balmy breezes, and the bright sunlight played
with the shadows of the clouds upon the wide
marshes, which were now growing green with
the warmth of returning spring. The fish

sprang from the water as I touched it with my


light oars.
St. Simon's Island,where Mr. Pierce Butler
once cultivated sea-island cotton, and to which
he took his English bride, Miss Kemble, with
its almost abandoned plantation, was reached

before ten o'clock. Frederica River carried me


along the whole length of the island to St.
Simon's Sound. When midway the island, I
paused to survey what remains of the old town
of Frederica, of which but few vestiges can be
discovered. History informs us that Frederica
was the town built by the English in
first

Georgia, and was founded by General Ogle-


thorpe, who began and established the colony.
The fortress was regular and beautiful, and was
the largest, most regular, and perhaps most
costly of any in North America of British con-
struction. Pursuing my journey southward, the
canoe entered the exposed area of St. Simon's
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 307

Sound, which, with its ocean inlet, was easily


crossed to the wild and picturesque Jekyl Island,
upon which the two bachelor brothers Dubignon
live and hunt the deer, enjoying the free life of
lords of the forest. Their old family mansion,
once a haven of hospitality, where the northern
tourist and shipwrecked sailor shared alike the

good things of this life with the kind host, was


used for a target by a gunboat during the late
war, and is now in ruins.
Here, twenty years ago, at midnight, the slave-
yacht "Wanderer" landed her cargo of African
negroes, the capital for the enterprise being sup-
plied by three southern gentlemen, and the ex-
ecution of the work being intrusted, under care-
fully drawn contracts, to Boston parties.
The calm weather greatly facilitated my prog-
ress,and had I not missed Jekyl Creek, which is
the steamboat thoroughfare through the marshes
to Jekyl and St. Andrew's Sound, that whole

day's experience would have been a most happy


one. The mouth of Jekyl Creek was a narrow
entrance, and being off in the sound, I passed it
as I approached the lowlands, which were
skirted until a passage at Cedar Hammock
through marsh was found, some distance
the
from the one I was seeking. Into this I entered,
and winding about for some time over its tor-
tuous course, at a late hour in the afternoon the
canoe emerged into a broad watercourse, down
308 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

which I could look across Jekyl Sound to the


sea.
This broad stream was Jointer Creek, and I
ascended it to find a spot of high ground upon
which to camp. It was now low water, and the
surface of the marshes was three or four feet
above my head. After much anxious searching,
and a great deal of rowing against the last of the
ebb, a forest of pines and palmetto-trees was
reached on Colonel's Island, at a point about four
miles across the marshes and Brunswick River
from the interesting old town of Brunswick,
Georgia.
The soft, muddy shores of the hammock were
in one place enveloped in a thicketof reeds, and
here I rested upon my oars to select a con-
venient landing-place. The rustling of the reeds
suddenly attracted my attention. Some animal
was crawling through the thicket in the direction
of the boat. became fixed upon the
My eyes
mysterious shaking and waving of the tops of the
reeds, and my hearing was strained to detect the
cause of the crackling of the dry rushes over
which this unseen creature was moving. A
moment later my curiosity was satisfied, for there
emerged slowly from the covert an alligator
nearly as large as my canoe. The brute's head
was as long as a barrel; his rough coat of mail
was besmeared with mud, and his dull eyes were
fixed steadily upon me. I was so surprised and
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 309

fascinated by the appearance of this huge reptile


that I remained immovable in my boat, while he
in a deliberate manner entered the water within
a few feet of me. The hammock suddenly lost
all its inviting aspect, and I pulled away from

it faster than I had approached. In the gloom I


observed two little hammocks, between Colonel's
Island and the Brunswick River, which seemed
to be near Jointer's Creek, so I followed the tor-
tuous thoroughfares until I was within a quarter
of a mile of one of them.
Pulling my canoe up a narrow creek towards
the largest hammock, until the creek ended in
the lowland, I was cheered by the sight of a
small house in a grove of live-oaks, to reach
which I was obliged to abandon my canoe and
attempt to cross the soft marsh. The tide was
now rising rapidly, and it
might be necessary for
me to swim some inland creek before I could
arrive at the upland.
An oar was driven into the soft mud of the
marsh and the canoe tied to it, for I knew that
the whole country, with the exception of the
hammock near by, would be under water at
flood-tide. Floundering through mud and
press-
ing aside the tall, wire-like grass of the lowland,
which entangled my feet, frequently leaping
natural ditches, and going down with a thud in
the mud on the other side, I finally struck the
firm ground of the largest Jointer Hammock,
310 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

when owner, Mr. R. F. Williams,


the voice of its

sounded most cheerfully in my ears as he ex-


claimed: "Where did you come from? How
did you get across the marsh?"
The unfortunate position of my boat was
explained while the family gathered round me,
after which we sat down to supper. Mr. Wil-
liams feltanxious about the cargo of my boat.
" "
The coons," he said, will scent your pro-

visions,and tear everything to pieces in the


boat. Wemust go look after it immediately."
To go to the canoe we were obliged to follow a
creek which swept past the side of the hammock,
opposite to my landing-place, and row two or
three miles on Jointer Creek. At nine o'clock
we reached the locality where I had abandoned
the paper canoe. Everything had changed in
appearance; the land was under water; not a
landmark remained except the top of the oar,
which rose out of the lake-like expanse of
water, while near it
gracefully floated my little
companion. We towed her to the hammock;
and after the tedious labor of divesting myself
of the marsh mud, which clung to my clothes,
had been crowned with success, the comfortable
bed furnished by my host gave rest to limbs and
nerves which had been severely overtaxed since
sunset.
The following day opened cloudy and windy.
The ocean inlet of Jekyl and St. Andrew's sounds
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 3! I

is three miles wide. From the mouth of Jointer


Creek, across these unprotected sounds, to

High Point of Cumberland Island, is


eight
miles. The route from the creek to Cumberland
Island was
a risky one for so small a boat as the

paper canoe while the weather continued un-


propitious. After entering the sounds there was
but one spot of upland, near the mouth of the
Satilla River, that could be used for camping

purposes on the vast area of marshes.


During the month of March rainy and windy
weather prevail on this coast. I could ill afford
to lose any time shut up in Jointer's Hammock
by bad weather, as the low regions of Okefe-
nokee Swamp were to be penetrated before the
warm make the task a disagreeable
season could
one. After holding a consultation with Mr.
Williams, he contracted to take the canoe and
its captain across St. Andrew's Sound to High
Point of Cumberland Island that day. His little
sloop was soon under way, and though the short,
breaking waves of the sound, and the furious
blasts of wind, made the navigation of the shoals

disagreeable, we landed quietly at Mr. Chubbs'


Oriental Hotel, at High Point, soon after noon.
Mr. Martin, the surveyor of the island, wel-
comed me to Cumberland, and gave me much
information pertaining to local matters. The
next morning the canoe left the high bluffs of
this beautiful sea island so filled with historic
312 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

associations, and threaded the marshy thorough-


fare of Cumberland and Brickhill River to Cum-
berland Sound. As I approached the mouth of
the St. Mary's River, the picturesque ruins of

Dungeness towered above the live-oak forest


of the southern end of Cumberland Island.
It was with regret I turned my back upon that

sea, the sounds of which had so long struck


upon my ear with their sweet melody. It
seemed almost a moan that was borne to me
now as the soft waves laved the sides of my
graceful craft, as though to give her a last,

loving farewell.
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 313

CHAPTER XIV.
ST. MARY'S RIVER AND THE SUWANEE WILDER-
NESS.

A PORTAGE TO BUTTON. DESCENT OF THE ST. MARY'S RIVER.


FETE GIVEN BY THE CITIZENS TO THE PAPER CANOE.
THE PROPOSED CANAL ROUTE ACROSS FLORIDA. A PORTAGE
TO THE SUWANEE RIVER. A NEGRO SPEAKS ON ELECTRIC-
ITY AND THE TELEGRAPH. A FREEDMAN'S SERMON.

NOW ascended the beautiful St. Mary's River,


I which flows from Okefenokee
the great
Swamp. The state of Georgia was on my right
hand, and Florida on my left. Pretty hammocks
dotted the marshes, while the country presented
peculiar and interesting characteristics. When
four miles from Cumberland Sound, the little city
of St. Mary's, situated on the Georgia side of
the river, was before me; and I went ashore to
make inquiries concerning the route to Okefe-
nokee Swamp.
My object was to getimormation about the
upper St. Mary's River, from which I proposed
to make a portage of thirty-five or forty miles in
a westerly direction to the Suwanee River,
upon arriving at which I would descend to the
314 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

Gulf of Mexico. My efforts, both at St. Mary's


and Fernandina, on the Florida side of Cum-
berland Sound, to obtain any reliable information
upon this matter, were unsuccessful. A settle-
ment at Trader's Hill, about seventy-five miles
up the St. Mary's River, was the geographical
limit of local knowledge, while I wished to
ascend the river at least one hundred miles be-
yond that point.

Believing that if explored the uninhabited


I

sources of the St. Mary's, I should be compelled


to return without finding any settler upon its
banks at the proper point of departure for a
portage to the Suwanee, it became necessary to
abandon idea of ascending this river. I could
all

not, however, give up the exploration of the


route. In this dilemma, a kindly written letter
seemed to solve the difficulties. Messrs. Dutton
& Rixford, northern gentlemen, who possessed
large facilities for the manufacture of resin and
turpentine at their new settlements of Dutton,
six miles from the St. Mary's River, and at Rix-

ford, near the Suwanee, kindly proposed that I


should take my canoe by railroad from Cumber-
land Sound to Dutton. From that station Mr.
Dutton offered to transport the boat through the
wilderness to the St. Mary's River, which could
be from that point easily descended to the sea.
The Suwanee River, at Rixford, could be
reached by rail, and the voyage would end at
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 315

itsdebouchure on the marshy coast of the Gulf


of Mexico.
Hon. David Yulee, president and one-third
owner of the A. G. & W. I. T. C. Railroad, which
connects the Atlantic coast at Fernandina with
the Gulf coast at Cedar Keys, offered me the
free use of his long railroad, for any purpose of

exploration, &c., while his son, Mr. C. Wick-


Yulee, exerted himself to remove
liffe all imped-
iments to delay.
These gentlemen, being native Floridians,
have done much towards encouraging all legiti-
mate exploration of the peninsula, and have
also done something towards putting a check on
the outrageous impositions practised on northern
agricultural emigrants to Florida, by encouraging
the organization of a railroad land-company,
which offers a forty-acre homestead for fifty dol-
lars, be selected out of nearly six hundred
to
thousand acres of land along their highway
across the state. A man
of comparatively
small means can now try the experiment of
making a home in the mild climate of Florida,
and if he afterwards abandons the enterprise

there will have been but a small investment of

capital, and consequently little loss.

The turpentine distillery of Dutton was situated


in a
heavy Major C. K.
forest of lofty pines.
Dutton furnished a team of mules to haul the
Maria Theresa to the St. Mary's River, the
316 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

morning after my arrival by rail at Button Sta-


tion. The warm sunshine shot aslant the tall

pines as the teamster followed a faintly devel-


oped trail towards the swamps. Before noon the
flashing waters of the stream were discernible,
and a little later, with paddle in hand, I was
urging the canoe towards the Atlantic coast. A
luxurious growth of trees and shrubs fringed
the low, and in some places submerged, river
shores. Back, on the higher, sandy soils, the
yellow pine forests, in almost primeval grandeur,
arose, shutting out all view of the horizon. Low
bluffs, with white, sandy beaches of a few rods
in extent, offered excellent camping-grounds.
When the Cracker of Okefenokee Swamp is

asked why he lives in so desolate a region, with


only a few cattle and hogs for companions, with
mosquitoes, and vermin about him, with
fleas,

alligators, catamounts, and owls on all sides,


"
making night hideous, he usually replies, Wai,
stranger, wood and water is so -powerful handy.
Sich privileges ain't met with everywhar."
As I glided swiftly down the dark current I
peered into the dense woods, hoping to be
cheered by the sight of a settler's cabin; but in
all that
day's search not a clearing could be
found, nor could I discern rising from the tree-
tops of the solitary forest a little cloud of smoke
issuing from the chimney of civilized man. I

was alone in the vast wilds through which the


^3*~f f <

<>*' M<'-<'i ' < '


(ZJLf
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 317

beautiful river flowed noiselessly but swiftly to


the sea. Thorea-u loved a swamp, and so do all
lovers of nature, for nowhere else does she so

bountifully show her vigorous powers of growth,


her varied wealth of botanical wonders. Here
the birds resort in flocks when weary of the hot,

sandy uplands, for here they find pure water,


cool shade, and many a curious glossy berry for
their dainty appetites.
As the little Maria Theresa sped onward
through the open forest and tangled wild-wood,
through wet morass and piny upland, my
thoughts dwelt
upon the humble life of the
Concord naturalist and philosopher. How he
would have enjoyed the descent of this wild
river from the swamp to the sea! He had left
us for purer delights; but I could enjoy his
ff
Walden" as though he still lived, and read of his
studies of nature with ever-increasing interest.

Sfcwamps have their peculiar features. Those


of the Waccamaw were indeed desolate, while
the swamps of the St. Mary's were full of sun-
shine for the traveller. Soon after the canoe
had commenced her river journey, a sharp sound,
like that produced by a man striking the water
with a broad, flat stick, reached my ears. As
this sound was frequently repeated, and always
in advance of my boat, it roused my curiosity.
It proved to come from One after
alligators.
another slipped off the banks, striking the water
318 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

tails as they took refuge


with their in the river
from the disturber of their peace. To observe
the movements of these reptiles I ran the canoe
within two rods of the shore, and by rapid
left

paddling was enabled to arrive opposite a crea-


ture as he entered the water. When thus con-
fronted, the alligator would depress his ugly
head, lash the water once with his tail, and dive
under the canoe, a most thoroughly alarmed an-
imal. All these alligators were mere babies,
very few being over four feet long. Had they
been as large one which greeted me at
as the
Colonel's Island, I should not have investigated
their dispositions, but would have considered
discretion the better part of valor, and left them
undisturbed in their sun-baths on the banks.
In all my experience with the hundreds of
alligators I have seen in the southern rivers
and swamps of North America, every one, both
large and small, fled at the approach of man.
The experience of some of my friends in their

acquaintance with American alligators has been


of a more serious nature. It is well to exercise
care about camping at night close to the water
infested with large saurians, as one of these
strong fellows could easily seize a sleeping man
by the leg and draw him into the river. They
do not seem to fear a recumbent or bowed fig-
most wild animals,
ure, but, like flee before the

upright form of man.


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 319

Late in the passed an island, made


afternoon I
"
by a cut-off" through a bend of the river, and,
according to previous directions, counted four-
teen bends or reaches in the river which was to

guide me
to Stewart's Ferry, the owner of which
lived back in the woods, his cabin not being dis-
cernible from the river. Near this spot, which
is occasionally visited by lumbermen and piny-
woods settlers, I drew my canoe on
sandy to a
beach one rod in length. A
little bluff, five or

six feet above the water, furnished me- with the


broad leaves of the saw-palmetto, a dwarfish sort
of palm, which I
arranged for a bed. The pro-
vision-basket was placed atmy head. A little
fireof light-wood cheered me for a while, but its
bright flame soon attracted winged insects in

large numbers. Having made a cup of choco-


late, and eaten some of Captain Akin's chipped
beef and crackers, I continued my preparations
for the night. Feeling somewhat nervous about
large alligators, I covered myself with a piece of
painted canvas, which was stiff and strong, and
placed the little revolver, my only weapon, under
my blanket.
As fully realized the novelty of
I
my strange
position in this desolate region, it was some time
before could compose myself and sleep. It
I

was a night of dreams. Sounds indistinct but


numerous troubled my brain, until I was fully
roused to wakefulness by horrible visions and
320 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

doleful cries. The chuck-will's-widow, which


in the south supplies the place of our whip-
"
poorwill, repeated his oft-told tale of chuck-
will's-widow, chuck-will's-widow," with untir-
ing earnestness. The owls hooted wildly, with
a chorus of cries from animals and reptiles not

recognizable by me, excepting the snarling voices


of the coons fighting in the forest. These last
were old acquaintances, however, as they fre-
quently gathered round my camp at night to pick
up the remains of supper.
While I listened, there rose a cry so hideous in
its character and so belligerent in its tone, that I

trembled with fear upon my palm-leaf mattress.


It resembled the bellowing of an infuriated bull,

but was louder and more penetrating in its effect.


The proximity of this animal was indeed un-
pleasant, for he had planted himself on the riv-
er's edge, near the little bluff upon which my
camp had been constructed. The loud roar was
answered by a similar bellow from the other side
of the river, and for a long time did these two
male alligators keep up their challenging cries,
without coming to combat. Numerous wood-
mice attacked my provision-basket, and even
worked their way through the leaves of my pal-
metto mattress.
Thus with an endless variety of annoyances
the night wore wearily away, but the light of the
rising sun did not penetrate the thick fog which
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 32!

enveloped the river until after eight o'clock,


when embarked for a second day's journey
I

upon the stream, which had now attained a width


of five or six rods. Rafts of logs blocked the
river as approached the settlement of Trader's
I

Hill, and upon a most insecure footing the canoe


was dragged over a quarter of a mile of logs,
and put into the water on the lower side of the
"jam." Crossing several of these log "jams,"
which covered the entire width of the St. Mary's,
I became weary of the task, and, after the last
was reached, determined to go into camp until
the next day, when suddenly the voices of men
in the woods were heard.
Soon a gentleman, with two raftsmen, ap-
peared and kindly greeted me. They had been
notified of approach at Trader's Hill by a
my
courier sent from Button across the woods, and
these men, whose knowledge of wood-craft is
wonderful, had timed my movements so cor-
rectly that they had arrived just in time to meet
me at this point. The two raftsmen rubbed the
canoe all over with their hands, and expressed
delight at its beautiful finish in their own pe-
culiar vernacular.
"
She 's the dog-gonedest thing I ever seed,
"
and putty as a new coffin! exclaimed one.
jist as
"
Indeed, she 's the handsomest trick I ever
did blink on," said the second.
The two stalwart lumbermen lifted the boat as
21
322 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

though she were but a feather, and carried her,


jumping from log to log, the whole length of the
raft. They then put her gently in the water, and
added to their farewell the cheering intelligence
that "there's no more jams nor rafts 'twixt here
and the sea, and you can go clar on to New
York if you like."
Trader's Hill, on a very high bluff on the left
bank, was soon passed, when the current seemed
suddenly to cease, and I felt the first tidal effect
of the sea, though many miles from the coast.
The tide was flooding. I now laid aside the

paddle, and putting the light steel outriggers in


their sockets, rapidly rowed down the now broad
river until the shadows of night fell upon forest
and stream, when the comfortable residence of
Mr. Lewis Davis, with his steam saw-mill, came
into sight upon Orange Bluff, on the Florida side
of the river. Here a kind welcome greeted me
from host and hostess, who had dwelt twenty
years in this romantic but secluded spot. There
were orange-trees forty years old on this prop-
erty, and all in fine bearing order. There was
also a fine sulphur spring near the house.
Mr. Davis stated that, during a residence of
twenty years in this charming locality, he had
experienced but one attack of chills. He con-
sidered the St. Mary's River, on account of the
purity of its waters, one of the healthiest of
southern streams. The descent of this beautiful
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 323

river now became a holiday pastime. Though


there were but few signs of the existence of
man, the scenery was of a cheering character.
A brick-kiln, a few saw -mills, and an abandoned
T

rice-plantation were passed, while the low salt-


marshes, extending into the river from the forest-
covered upland, gave evidence of the proximity
to the sea.Large alligators were frequently seen
sunning themselves upon the edges of the banks.
At dusk the town of St. Mary's, in its wealth
of foliage, opened to my view from across the
lowlands, and soori after the paper canoe was
carefully stored in a building belonging to one
of its hospitable citizens, while local authority
asserted that I had traversed one hundred and

seventy-five miles of the river.


One evening, while enjoying the hospitality
of Mr. Silas Fordam, at his beautiful winter
"
home, Orange Hall," situated in the heart of
St.Mary's, a note, signed by the Hon. J. M. Ar-
now, mayor of the city, was handed me. Mr.
Arnow, in the name of the city government, in-
vited my presence at the Spencer House. Upon
arriving at hotel, a surprise awaited me.
the
The citizens of the place had gathered to wel-
come the paper canoe and its owner, and to
express the kindly feelings they, as southern cit-
izens, held towards their northern friends. The
hotel was decorated with flags and floral em-
blems, one of which expressed, in its ingeniously
324 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.
"
constructed words, wrought in flowers, One
hundred thotisand Welcomes"
The mayor and his friends received me upon
the veranda of the hotel with kind words of
welcome. Bright lights glimmered at this mo-
ment through the long avenue of trees, and
music arose. upon the night air. It was a torch-
light procession coming from the river, bearing
upon a framework structure, from which hung
Chinese lanterns and wreaths of laurel, the little
paper canoe. The Base-ball Club of the city,
dressed in their handsome uniform, carried the
"
Maria Theresa," while the sailors from the
lumber fleet in the river, with the flags of several
nationalities, brought up the rear.
When the procession arrived in front of the
hotel, three hearty cheers were given by the
people, and the mayor read the city's address of
welcome to me; to which I made reply, not only
inbehalf of myself, but of all those of my coun-
trymen who desired the establishment of a pure
and good government in every portion of our
dear land.
Mayor Arnow presented me with an engrossed
copy of his speech of welcome, in which he in-
vited all industrious northerners to come to his
native city, promising that city ordinances should
be passed to encourage the erection of manufac-
tories, &c., by northern capital and northern
labor. After the address, the wife of the mayor
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 325

presented me with two memorial banners, in the


name of the ladies of the city. These were made
for the occasion,and being the handiwork of the
ladies themselves, were highly appreciated by
the recipient. When these graceful tributes had
been received, each lady and child present de-
posited a bouquet of flowers, grown in the gardens
of Mary's, in my little craft, till it contained
St.

about four hundred of these refined expressions


of the good- will ,of these kind people. Not only
did the native population of the town vie with
each other to accord the lonely voyager a true
southern welcome, but Mr. A. Curtis, an English
gentleman, who, becoming fascinated with the
fine climate of this part of Georgia, had settled
here, did all he could to show his appreciation
of canoe-travelling, and superintended the ma-
rine display and flag corps of the procession.
I left St. Mary's with a strange longing to re-

turn to its interesting environs, and to study here


the climatology of southern Georgia, for, strange
" "
to say, cases of local fever and chills have
never originated in the city. It is reached from
Savannah by the inside steamboat route, or by
rail, to Fernandina, with which it is connected
by a steamboat ferry eight miles in length. Spec-
ulation not having yet affected the low valuation

placed upon property around St. Mary's, northern


men can obtain winter homes in this attractive
town at a very low cost. This city is a port of
326 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

entry. Mr. Joseph Shepard, a most faithful


government officer, has filled the position of
collector of customs for several years.
As vessels of considerable tonnage can ascend
the St. Mary's River from the sea on a full tide
to the wharves of the city, its citizens prophesy a
future growth and development for the place
when a river and canal route across the penin-
sula between the Atlantic Ocean and the Gulf of
Mexico shall have been completed. For many
years Colonel Raiford has been elaborating his
"
plan for elongating the western and southern
inland system of navigation to harbors of the At-
lantic Ocean." He proposes to unite the natural
watercourses of the coast of the Gulf of Mexico
by short canals, so that barges drawing seven feet
of water, and freighted with the produce of the
Mississippi River and its tributaries, may pass
from New Orleans eastward to the southern ports
of the Atlantic States.The great peninsula of
Florida would be crossed by these vessels from
the Suwanee to the St. Mary's River by means
of a canal cut through the Okefenokee Swamp,
and this route would save several hundred miles
of navigation upon open ocean waters. The
dangerous coral reefs of the Florida and Bahama
shores would be avoided, and a land-locked
channel of thirty thousand miles of navigable
watercourses would be united in one system.
Lieutenant-Colonel Q. A. Gilmore's report on
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 327

"Water Line for Transportation from the Mouth


of the Mary's River, on the Atlantic Coast,
St.

through Okefenokee Swamp and the State of


Florida to the Gulf of Mexico," in which the
able inquirer discusses this water route, has re-

cently been published. I traversed a


portion of
1875-6, from the head of the Ohio
this route in
River to New Orleans, and along the shores of
the Gulf of Mexico to Cedar Keys, in a cedar
duck-boat; and as the results of my observations
may some day be made public, I will at this
time refer the reader, if he be interested in the

important enterprise, to the Congressional reports


which describe the feasibility of the plan.
Another portage by rail was made in order to
complete my journey to the Gulf of Mexico, and
Rixford, near the Suwanee River, was reached
via the A. G. & W. I. T. C. Railroad to Baldwin,
thence over the J. P. & M.
Railroad to Live Oak,
where another railroad from the north connects,
and along which, a few miles from Live Oak,
Messrs. Dutton & Rixford had recently estab-
lished their turpentine and resin works.
At Rixford I found myself near the summit, or
backbone of Florida, from which the tributaries
of the- water-shed flow on one side to the Atlan-
tic Ocean, and on the other to the Gulf of Mexico.

It was a high region of rolling country, heavily

wooded with magnificent pine forests, rich in


terebinthine resources. The residence, of the
328 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

proprietor, the store and the distillery, with a few


log cabins inhabited by negroes and white em-
ployes, made up the establishment of Rixford.
The Crackers and negroes came from long
distances to see the paper boat. One afternoon,
when a number of people had gathered at Rix-
ford to behold the little craft, I placed it on one
of those curious sheets of water of crystal purity
called in that region a sink; and though this
nameless, mirror-like lakelet did not cover over
an acre in extent, the movements of the little

craft, when propelled by the double paddle, ex-


cited an enthusiasm which is seldom exhibited
by the piny-woods people.
As the boat was
carefully lifted from the sil-
very tarn, one woman called out in a loud voice,
"Lake Theresa! " and thus, by mutual consent
of every one present, did this lakelet of crystal
waters receive name.
its

The blacks crowded around the canoe, and


while feeling its firm texture, and wondering at
the long distance it had traversed, expressed
themselves in their peculiar and original way.
One of their number, known as a " tonguey nig-
ger," volunteered to explain the wonder to the
somewhat confused intellects of his companions.
"
To a question from one negro as to How did
dis yere Yankee-man cum all dis fur way in de
"
paper canoe, all hissef lone?" the educated"
negro replied: "It's all de Lord. No man ken
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 329

cum so fur in a. ef de Lord didn't help


paper boat
him. De Lorddoes eberyting. He puts de tings
in de Yankee-man's heads to du um, an' dey duz
um. Dar was de big Franklin up norf, dat made
de telegraf.Did ye eber har tell ob him?"
"
"Neber, neber! responded all the negroes.
Then, with a look of supreme contempt for
the ignorance of his audience, the orator pro-
ceeded: "Dis great Franklin, Cap'n Franklin,
he tort he'd kotch de litening and make de tele-
graf; so he flies a big kite way up to de heabens,
an' he puts de string in de bottle dat hab nufing
in it. Den he holds de bottle in one hand, an' he
holds de cork in de udder hand. Down cums
de litening and fills de bottle full up, and Cap'n
Franklin he dun cork him up mighty quick, and
kotched de litening an' made de telegraf. But
it was de Lord de Lord, not Cap'n Franklin
dat did all dis."

It was amusing to watch the varied expression


of the negroes, as they listened to this description
of the discovery of electricity, and the origin of
the telegraph. Their eyes dilated with wonder,
and their thick lips parted till the mouth, grow-
ing wider and wider, seemed to cover more than
its share of the face. The momentary silence was
soon broken by a deep gurgle proceeding from a
stolid-looking negro, as he exclaimed: "Did he
kotch de bottle full ob litening, and cork him
"
up. Golly! I tort he wud hab busted hissef !
330 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.
" "
So he wud ! so he wud ! roared the orator,
"
but ye see 'twas all de Lord de Lord's a-
doing it."

While in Florida I paid some attention to the


negro method of conducting praise meetings,
which they very appropriately call w de shout-
ings." If I give some verbatim reports of the

negro's curious and undignified clerical efforts,


it is not done for the purpose of caricaturing
him, nor with a desire to make him appear desti-
tute of mental calibre; but rather with the hope
that the picture given may draw some sympathy
from the liberal churches of the north, which do
not forget the African in his native jungle, nor the
barbarous islanders of the South Seas. well- A
informed Roman Catholic priest told me that
he had been disappointed with the progress his
powerfully organized church had made in con-
verting the freedmen. Before going among them
I had supposed that the simple-minded black,
now no longer a slave, would be easily attracted
to the impressive ceremonies of the Church of

Rome; but after witnessing the activity of their


devotions, and observing how anxious they are
to take a conspicuous and a leading part in all

religious services, it seemed to me that the free


black of the south would take more naturally to
Methodism than to any other form of Chris-
tianity.
The appointment of local -preachers would be
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 33!

especially acceptable to the negro, as he would


then be permitted to have ministers of his own
color, and of his own neighborhood, to lead the
meetings; while the Roman Catholic priest
would probably treat him more like a child, and
would therefore exercise a strong discipline over
him.
In one of their places of worship, at my re-
quest, a New
York lady, well skilled in rapid
writing and familiar with the negro vernacular,
reported verbatim the negro preacher's sermon.
The text was the parable of the ten virgins; and
as the preacher went on, he said: "Five ob dem
war wise an' five of dem war foolish. De wise jes
gone an' dun git dar lamps full up ob oil, and
and see de bridegoom;
git rite in an' de foolish

dey sot dem rite down on de stool ob do-noting,


an' dar dey sot till de call cum; den dey run,
pick up der ole lamps and try to push door in,
but de Lord say to dem, ? Git out dar! you jes git
'
out dar! an' shut door rite in dar face.
"My brudders and my sisters, yer must fill de
lamps wid de gospel ob Moses,
an' de edication
fur Moses war a larned man, is de
an' edication
mos estaminable blessirf a pusson kin hab in
dis world.
"
Hole-on to de gospel ! Ef you see dat de
flag amtore, get hole somewhar, keep a grabblin
until ye git hole ob de stick, an' nebah gib up de

stick, but grabble, grabble till ye die; for dough


332 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

yer sins be as black as scarlet, dey shall be white


as snow."
The sermon over, the assembled negroes then
sung in slow measure:

" Lit-tell
chil-ern, you'd bet-tar be-a-lieve
Lit-tell chil-ern, you'd bet-tar be-a-lieve
Lit-tell chil-ern, you'd bet-tar be-a-lieve
I'll git home to heav-en when I die.

Sweet heav-en ain-a-my-ain,


Sweet heav-en ain-a-my-ain,
Sweet heav-en ain-a-my-ain,
I'll
git home to heav-en when I die.

Lord wish-ed I was in heav-en,


Fur to see my mudder when she enter,
Fur to see her tri-als an' long white robes :

She'll shine like cristul in de sun.

Sweet heav-en ain-a-my-ain,


Sweet heav-en ain-a-my-ain,
Sweet heav-en ain-a-my-ain,
I'll git home to heav-en when I die."

While town in Georgia, where the


visiting a
negroes had made some effort to improve their
condition, I made a few notes relating to the
freedman's debating society of the place. Affect-
ing high-sounding words, they called their organ-
w
ization, De Lycenum," and its doings were

directed by a committee of two persons, called


"
respectively, de disputaceous visitor," and " de
lachrymal visitor." What particular duties de-
volved upon the " lachrymal visitor," I could
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 333

never clearly ascertain. One evening these


negroes debated upon the following theme,
:?
Which is de best when ye are out ob a ting,
"
or when ye hab got it? which was another form
of expressing the old question, " Is there more
pleasure in possession than in anticipation?"
Another night the colored orators became in-
tensely excited over the query, "Which is de
best, Spring Water or Matches?"
The freedmen, for so unfortunate a class, seem
to be remarkably well behaved. During several
journeys through the southern states I found
them usually temperate, and very civil in their
intercourse with the whites, though it must be
confessed that but few of them can apply them-
selves steadily and persistently to manual labor,
either for themselves or their employers.
334 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

CHAPTER XV.
DOWN UPON THE SUWANEE RIVER.

THE RICK FOLIAGE OF THE RIVER. COLUMBUS. ROLINS*


BLUFF. OLD TOWN HAMMOCK. A HUNTER KILLED BY A
PANTHER. DANGEROUS SERPENTS. CLAY LANDING. THE
MARSHES OF THE COAST. BRADFORD'S ISLAND. MY LAST
CAMP. THE VOYAGE ENDED.

friends, among whom were Colonel


SOME George W. Nason, Jr., of Massachusetts,
and Major John Purviance, Commissioner of
Suwanee County, offered to escort the paper
canoe down " the river of song " to the Gulf of
Mexico, a distance, according to local authority,
of two hundred and thirty-five miles. While
the members of the party were preparing for the

journey, Colonel Nason accompanied me to the

river, which was less than three miles from Rix-


ford, the proprietors of which sent the canoe
after us on a wagon drawn by mules. The point
of embarkation was the Lower Mineral Springs,
the property of Judge Bryson.
The Suwanee, which was swollen by some
recent rains in Okefenokee Swamp, was a wild,
dark, turbulent current, which went coursing
through the woods on its tortuous route with
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 335

great rapidity. The luxuriant foliage of the


river-banks was remarkable. Maples were in
blossom, beech-trees in bloom, while the buck-
eye was covered with its heavy festoons of red
flowers. Pines, willows, cotton-wood, two kinds
of hickory, water-oak, live-oak, sweet-gum,
magnolia, the red and white bay-tree, a few red-
cedars, and haw-bushes, with many species not
known to me, made up a rich wall of verdure on
either side, assped along with a light heart to
I

Columbus, where my compagnons de voyage


were to' meet me. Wood-ducks and egrets, in
small flocks, inhabited the forest. The lime-
stone banks of the river were not visible, as the
water was eighteen feet above its low summer
level.
I now
passed under the railroad bridge which
connects Live Oak with Savannah. After a
steady row of some hours, my progress was
checked by a great boom, stretched across the
river to catch the logs which floated down from
I was
the upper country. obliged to disembark
and haul the canoe around this obstacle, when,
after passing a few clearings, the long bridge of
the J. P. & M. Railroad came into view, stretching
across the now wide river from one wilderness
to the other. On bank was all that
the left

remained of the once flourishing town of Colum-


bus, consisting now of a store, kept by Mr.
Allen, and a few buildings. Before the railroad
336 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

was built, Columbus possessed a population of


five hundred souls, and it was reached, during
favorable stages of water, by light-draught steam-
boats from Cedar Keys, on the Gulf of Mexico.
The building of railroads in the south has
diverted trade from one locality to another, and
many towns, once prosperous, have gone to

decay.
The steam saw-mills and village of Ellaville
were located on the river-bank opposite Colum-
bus, and this lumber establishment is the only
place of importance between it and Cedar Keys.
This far-famed river, to which the heart of the
"
minstrel'sdarky is
turning eber," is, in fact,
"
almost without the one little hut among de
bushes," for it is a wild and lonely stream.
Even in the most prosperous times there were
but few plantations upon its shores. Wild ani-
mals roam its great forests, and vile reptiles
infest the dense swamps. It is a country well
fitted for the hunter and lumberman, for the
naturalist or canoeist; but the majority of people

would, I am sure, rather hear of it poured forth


in song from the sweet lips of Christina Nilsson,
"
than to be themselves way down upon the
Suwanee Ribber."
On Monday, March 22d, Messrs. Nason, Pur-
viance, and Henderson joined me. The party
had obtained a northern-built shad-boat, which
had been brought by rail from Savannah. It
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 337

was sloop-rigged, and was decked forward, so


that the enthusiastic tourists possessed a weather-

proof covering for their provisions and blankets.


With the strong current of the river, a pair of
long oars, and a sail to be used when favorable
winds blew, the party in the shad-boat could
make easy and rapid progress towards the Gulf,
while my lightly dancing craft needed scarcely
a touch of the oar to send her forward.
On Tuesday, the 23d, we left Columbus, while
a crowd of people assembled to see us off, many
of them seeming to consider this simple and de-
lightful way of travelling too dangerous to be
attempted. The smooth but swift current rolled
on its course like a sea of molten glass, as the
soft sunlight trembled through the foliage and
shimmered over its broad surface.
Our boats glided safely over the rapids, which
for a mile and a half impede the navigation of
the river during the summer months, but which
were now made safe by the great depth of water
caused by the freshet. The weather was charm-
ing, and our little party, fully alive to all the
beautiful surroundings, woke many an echo with
sounds meant to be sweet. Of course the good
old song was not forgotten. Our best voice
sang:
"
Way down up-on de Suwanee Rib-ber,
Far, far away,
Dere's whar my heart is turn-ing eb-ber,
Dere's whar de old folks stay.
22
338 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

All up and down de whole creation


Sadly I roam,
Still longing lor de old plantation,
And for de old folks at home.

" All round de little farm I wander'd


When
was young I ;

Den many happy days I squan-der'd


Many de songs I
sung.
When Iwas playing wid my brud-der,
Hap-py was I.
O ! take me to my kind old mud-der,
Dere let me live and die !

" One little hut among de bushes,


One dat I love,

sadly to my mem'ry rushes,


Still

No matter where I rove.


When will I see de bees a-hum-ming
All round de comb ?

When will I hear de ban-jo tum-ming


*
Down in my good old home ? "

We all joined in the chorus at the end of each


verse :

" All de world am sad and dreary


Eb-ry-whar I roam.
O, darkies, how my heart grows weary,
Far from de old folks at home."

We soon entered forests primeval which were


quiet, save for the sound of the axe of the log-
thief, for timber-stealing a profession which is

reaches its greatest perfection on the Florida


state lands and United States naval reserves.
Uncle Sam's being constantly plun-
territory is

dered to supply the steam saw-mills of private


VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 339

individuals in Florida. Several of the party told


interesting stories of the way in which log-thieves
managed to steal from the government legally.
T "
There," said one, is X, who runs his mill
on the largest tract of pine timber Uncle Sam
has got. He once bought a few acres' claim
adjacent to a fine naval reserve. He was not,
of course, able to discover the boundary line
which separated his little tract from the rich

government reserve, so he kept a large force


of men cutting down Uncle Sam's immense
pines, and, hauling them to the Suwanee, floated
them to his mill. This thing went on for some
time, till the
government agent made his appear-
ance and demanded a settlement.
'The wholesale timber-thief now showed a
fair face, and very frankly explained that he sup-

posed he had been cutting logs from his own


territory, but quite recently he had discovered
that he had really been trespassing on the prop-

erty of his much-loved country, and as he was


truly a loyal citizen, he desired to make restitu-
tion, and was now ready to settle.
T
The government agent was astonished at the
seeming candor of the man, who so worked upon
his sympathy that he promised to be as easy

upon him as the law allowed. The agent set-


tled upon a valuation of fifty cents an acre for
all the
territory that had been cut over. And c

now,' said he, how'

many acres of land have


34 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.
" "
you logged since you put your lumbermen
'
into the forest?
"
Mr. X declared himself unable to answer
this question,but generously offered to permit
the agent to put down any number of acres he
thought would represent a fair thing between
a kind government and one of its unfortunate
citizens. Intending to do his duty faithfully, the
officer settled upon two thousand acres as having
been trespassed upon; but to his astonishment the
incomprehensible offender stoutly affirmed that he
had logged fully five thousand acres, and at once
settled the matter in full by paying twenty-five
hundred dollars, taking a receipt for the same.
"
When this enterprising business-man visited
Jacksonville, his friends rallied him upon con-
fessing judgment to government for three thou-
sand acres of timber more than had been claimed
by the agent. This true patriot winked as he
replied:
f
It is true I hold a receipt from the govern-
ment for the timber on
thousand acres at
five
the very low rate of fifty cents an acre. As I
have not yet cut logs from more 'than one-fifth
of the tract, / intend to -work off the timber on
the other four thousand acres at my leisure^ and
no power can stop me now I have the govern-
ment receipt to show it's paid for.' r
The sloop and the canoe had left Columbus a
little before noon, and at six p. M. we
passed
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 34!

Charles' Ferry, where the old St. Augustine

and Tallahassee forest road crosses the river.


At this lonely place an old man, now dead,
owned a subterranean spring, which he called
"
Mediterranean passage." This spring is power-
" "
ful enough to run a rickety, up-and-down
saw-mill. The great height of the water al-
lowed me to paddle into the mill with my canoe.
At half past seven o'clock a deserted log
cabin at Harrington's Ferry offered us shelter for
the night. The whole of the next day we rowed
through the same immense forests, finding no
more cultivated land than during our first day's
voyage. We landed at a log cabin in a small
clearing to purchase eggs of a poor woman,
whose husband had shot her brother a few days
before. As the wife's brother had visited the
cabin with the intention of killing the husband,
the woman seemed to think the murdered man
had "got his desarts," and, as a coroner's jury
had returned a verdict of "justifiable homicide,"
the affair was considered settled.
Below this cabin we came to Island No. i,
where rapids trouble boatmen in the summer
months. Now
we glided gently but swiftly over
the deep current. The few inhabitants we met
along the banks of the Suwanee seemed to carry
with them an air of repose while awake. To
rouse them from mid-day slumbers we would
call loudly as we passed a cabin in the woods,
34 2 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

and after considerable delay a man would appear


at the door, rubbing his eyes as though the genial
sunlight was oppressive to his vision. It was

indeed a quiet, restful region, this great wilder-


ness of the Suwanee.
We passed Mrs. Goodman's farm and log
buildings on the left bank, just below Island
No. before noon, and about this time Major
8,
Purviance shot at a large wild turkey (Melea-
gris gallopavo}, knocking it off a bank into the
water. The gobbler got back to land, and led
us a fruitless chase into the thicket of saw-pal-
metto. He knew his groundbetter than we, for,

though wounded, he made good his escape.


We stopped a few moments at Troy, which,
though dignified in name, consists only of a
store and some half dozen buildings.
A few miles below this place, on the left
bank of the river, is an uninhabited elevation
called Rolins' Bluff, from which a line running
north 22 east, twenty-three miles and a half in

length, will strike Live Oak. Acharter to con-


nect Live Oak with this region of the Suwanee

by means of a railroad had just passed the Flor-


ida legislature, but had been killed by the veto
of the governor. After sunset the boats were
secured in safe positions in front of a deserted
cabin, round which a luxuriant growth of bitter-
orange trees showed what nature could do for
this neglected grove. The night air was balmy,
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 343

and tremulous with insect life, while the alliga-


tors in the swamps kept up their bellowings till

morning.
After breakfast we descended to the moutrrof
the Santa Fe River, which was on bank
the left
of the Suwanee. The piny-woods people called
itthe Santaffy. The wilderness below the Santa
Fe is rich in associations of the Seminole Indian
war. Many have been found, and, among
relics

others, on the site of an old Indian town, en-


tombed in a hollow tree, the skeletons of an
Indian adult and child, decked with beads, were
discovered. Fort Fanning is on the left bank,
and Old Town Hammock on the right bank of
the Suwanee.

During the Seminole war, the hammock and


the neighboring fastnesses became the hiding-

places of the persecuted Indians, and so wild


and undisturbed is this region, even at this time,
that the bear, lynx, and panther take refuge from
man in its jungles.
Colonel
J. L. F. Cottrell left his native Vir-

ginia in 1854, and commenced the cultivation of


the virgin soil of Old Town Hammock. Each
state has its peculiar mode of dividing its land,
and here in Florida this old plantation was in
township 10, section
24, range 13. The estate
included about two thousand acres of land, of
which nearly eleven hundred were under culti-
vation. The slaves whom the colonel brought
344 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

from Virginia were now his tenants, and he


leased them portions of his arable acres. He
considered this locality as health)- as any in the
Suwanee country. The
old planter's home, with
its hospitable doors ever open to the stranger,

was embowered in live-oaks and other trees,


from the branches of which the graceful festoons
of Spanish moss waved in the soft air, telling of
a warm, moist atmosphere.
A large screw cotton-press and corn-cribs,
with smoke-house and other plantation buildings,
were conveniently grouped under the spreading
branches of the protecting oaks. The estate
produced cotton, corn, sweet potatoes, cattle,
hogs, and poultry. Deer sometimes approached
the enclosed fields, while the early morning call
of the wild turkey came from the thickets of the
hammock. In this of Florida,
retired part
cheered by the society of a devoted wife and
four lovely daughters, lived the kind-hearted

gentleman who not only pressed upon us the


comforts of his well-ordered house, but also in-
sisted upon accompanying the paper canoe from
his forest home to the sea.
When gathered around the firesides of the
backwoods people, the conversation generally
runs into hunting stories, Indian reminiscences,
and wild tales of what the pioneers suffered
while establishing themselves in their forest
homes. One event of startling interest had oc-
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 345

curred in the Suwanee country a few weeks


before the paper canoe entered its confines.
Two hunters went by night to the woods to
shoot deer by firelight. As they stalked about,
with light-wood torches held above their heads,
they came upon a herd of deer, which, being
bewildered by the glare of the lights, made no
attempt to escape. Sticking their torches in the
ground, the hunters stretched themselves flat
upon the grass, to hide their forms from the an-
imals they hoped to kill at their leisure. One
of the men was stationed beneath the branches
of a large tree; the other was a few yards distant.
Before the preconcerted signal for discharging
their rifles couldbe given, the sound of a heavy
body falling to the ground, and an accompanying
smothered shriek, startled the hunter who was
farthest from the tree. Starting up in alarm, he
flew to the assistance of his friend, whose pros-
trate form was covered by a large panther, which
had pounced upon him from the overhanging
limb of the great oak. It had been but the
work of an instant for the powerful cougar to
break with his strong jaws the neck of the poor
backwoodsman.
In this rare case of a panther {Felis concolor)

voluntarily attacking man, it will be noted by


the student of natural history that the victim was

lying upon the ground. Probably the animal


would not have left his perch among the
346 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

branches of the oak, where he was evidently


waiting for the approach of the deer, if the up-
right form of the man had been seen. Go to a
southern bayou, which is rarely, if ever, visited
by man, and where its saurian inhabitants have
never been annoyed by him, place your body
in a recumbent position on the margin of the

lagoon, and wait until some large alligator slowly


rises to the surface, of the water. He will eye

you for a moment with evident curiosity, and


will in some casessteadily approach you.
When the monster reptile is within two or three
rods of your position, rise slowly upon your feet
to your full height, and the alligator of the south-
ern states the A. Mississippiensis will, in
nine cases out of ten, retire with precipitation.
There are but few wild animals that will at-
tack man
willingly when face to face with him;
they quail before his erect form. In every case
of the animals of North America showing fight
to man, which has been investigated by me, the
beasts have had no opportunity to escape, or
have had their young to defend, or have been
wounded by the hunter.
It w as
r

nearly ten o'clock A. M. on Friday,


March 26th, when our merry party left Old
Town Hammock. This day was to see the end
of the voyage of the paper canoe, for my tiny
craft was to arrive at the waters of the great
southern sea before midnight. The wife and
*

VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 347

daughters of our host, like true women of the for-


est, offered no forebodings at the departure of
the head of their household, but wished him, with
cheerful looks, a pleasant voyage to the Gulf.
The gulf port of Cedar Keys is but a few miles
from the mouth of the Suwanee River. The
railroad which terminates at Cedar Keys would,
with its connection with other routes, carry the
members of our 'party to their several homes.
The bright day animated our spirits, as we
swept swiftly down the river. The party in the
"
shad-boat, now called Adventurer," rowed mer-
rily on with song and laughter, while I made an
attempt to examine more closely the character
of the water-moccasin the
Trigono cephalus-
piscivorus of Lacepede, which I had more
cause to fear than the alligators of the river.
The water-moccasin is about two feet in
length,
and has a circumference of five or six inches.
The tail possesses a horny point about half an
inch in length, which
harmless, though the
is

Crackers and negroes stoutly affirm that when


it strikes a tree the tree withers and dies, and

when it enters the flesh of a man he is poisoned


unto death. The color of the reptile is a dirty
brown. Never found far from water, it is com-
mon in the swamps, and is the terror of the rice-
field negroes. The bite of the water-moccasin
is
exceedingly venomous, and it is considered
more poisonous than that of the rattlesnake, which
348 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

warns man of his approach by sounding his


rattle.

The moccasin does not, like the rattlesnake,


wait to be attacked, but assumes the offensive
whenever opportunity offers, striking with its
fangs at every animated object in its vicinity.
All other species of snakes flee from its presence.
It is found as far north as the Peedee River of

South Carolina, and is low dis-


abundant in all
tricts of the southern states. As the Suwanee
had overflowed its banks below Old Town Ham-
mock, the snakes had taken to the low Kmbs
of the trees and to the tops of bushes, where
they seemed to be sleeping in the warmth of the
bright sunlight; but as I glided along the shore
a few feet from their aerial beds, they discovered
my presence, and dropped sluggishly into the
water. It would not be an exaggeration to say

that we passed thousands of these dangerous

reptiles while descending the Suwanee. Rafts-


men told me that when traversing lagoons in
their log canoes, if a moccasin is met some dis-
tance from land he will frequently enter the canoe
for refuge or for rest, and instances have been
known where the occupant has been so alarmed
as to jump overboard and swim ashore in order
to escape from this malignant reptile.
The only place worthy of notice between Old
Town Hammock and the gulf marshes is Clay
Landing, on the left bank of the river, where
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 349

Mrs. Tresper formerly lived in a very comfort-


able house. Clay Landing was used during the
Confederate war as a place of deposit for block-
ade goods. Archer, a railroad station, is but
twenty miles distant, and to it over rough roads
the contraband imports were hauled by mule
teams, after having been landed from the fleet
blockade-runner.
As the sun was sinking to rest, and the tree-
shadows grew long on the wide river's Jposom,
we tasted the saltness in the air as the briny
breezes were wafted to us over the forests
from the Gulf of Mexico. After darkness had
cast its sombre mantle upon us, we left the
:?
East Pass " entrance to the left, and our boats
hurried on the rapidly ebbing tide down the broad
West Pass " into the great marshes of the coast.
:<:

An hour later we emerged from the dark forest


into the smooth savannas. The freshness of the
sea-air wasexhilarating The stars were shining
softly, and the ripple of the tide, the call of the
heron, or the whirr of the frightened duck, and
the leaping of fishes from the water, were the

only sounds nature offered us. It was like enter-


ing another world. In these lowlands, near the
mouth of the river, there seemed to be but one
place above the high-tide level. It was a little

hammock, covered by a few trees, called Brad-


ford's Island, and rose like an oasis in the desert.
The swift tide hurried along its shores, and a
350 VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE.

little farther on mingled the waters of the great


wilderness with that of the sea.
Ourtired party landed on a shelly beach, and
burned a grassy area to destroy sand-fleas. This
done, some built a large camp-fire, while others
spread blankets upon the ground. I drew the
faithful sharer long voyage near a thicket
of my
of prickly-pears, and slept beside it for the last
time, never thinking or dreaming that one year
later I should approach the* mouth of the Suwa-
nee from the west, after a long voyage of twenty-
five hundred miles from the head of the Ohio

River, and would again seek shelter on its banks.


It was a night of sweet repose. The camp-fire
dissipated the damps, and the long row made
rest welcome.
A glorious morning broke upon our party as
we breakfasted under the shady palms of the
island. Behind us rose the compact wall of
dark green of the heavy forests, and along the
coast, from east to west, as far as the eye could
reach, were the brownish-green savanna-like
lowlands, against which beat, in soft murmurs,
the waves of that sea I had so longed to reach.
From out the broad marshes arose low ham-
mocks, green with pines and feathery with pal-
metto-trees. Clouds of mist were rising, and
while I watched them melt away in the warm
beams of the morning sun, I thought they were
like the dark doubts which curled themselves
VOYAGE OF THE PAPER CANOE. 351

about me so long ago in the cold St. Lawrence,


now all melted by the joy of success. The snow-
clad north was now behind me. The Maria
Theresa danced in the shimmering waters of
the great southern sea, and my heart was light,
for my voyage was over.

No. 14. THE VOYAGE ENDED.


IF Bishop, Nathaniel Holmes, 1837-
,106 1902.
1
.862 Voyage of the paper canoe :

1882

You might also like